Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a scripture_n time_n 2,768 5 3.3859 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A05223 Dutifull and respective considerations vpon foure seuerall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion Proposed by the high and mighty prince, Iames King of Great Britayne, France, and Ireland &c. in his late booke of premonition to all christian princes, for clearing his royall person from the imputation of heresy. By a late minister & preacher in England.; Dutifull and respective considerations upon foure severall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion. Leech, Humphrey, 1571-1629.; Parsons, Robert, 1546-1610. aut 1609 (1609) STC 15362.5; ESTC S100271 179,103 260

There are 42 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

concur_v and_o conjoin_v themselves_o with_o calvin_n and_o the_o caluinist_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n 39_o and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o perceive_v how_o his_o majesty_n assertion_n here_o about_o these_o book_n do_v not_o rather_o agree_v with_o the_o lutheran_n then_o with_o the_o caluiniste_n for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o hold_v all_o those_o book_n for_o apocrypha_fw-la &_o no_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o be_v name_v by_o bellarmine_n to_o be_v secundiordinis_fw-la in_o which_o second_o order_n as_o before_o have_v be_v declare_v the_o cardinal_n comprehend_v also_o these_o epistle_n to_o wit_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o of_o s._n james_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v and_o infer_v upon_o his_o majesties_n word_n and_o discourse_n that_o he_o hould_v these_o for_o no_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o this_o be_v contrary_n unto_o calvin_n and_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o unto_o his_o majesty_n himself_o for_o he_o avouch_v they_o to_o be_v scripture_n and_o so_o upon_o my_o knowledge_n do_v the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n and_o last_o his_o majesty_n so_o long_o stand_v upon_o the_o apocalypse_n in_o this_o his_o premonition_n do_v well_o show_v that_o he_o esteem_v it_o for_o scripture_n and_o this_o contradiction_n also_o must_v light_v upon_o he_o who_o against_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n if_o he_o have_v either_o wrongful_o suggest_v the_o place_n of_o bellarmine_n unto_o his_o majesty_n 40._o but_o my_o main_a conclusion_n of_o all_o be_v this_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v certain_a as_o here_o it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v consideration_n when_o a_o man_n once_o depart_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n unto_o all_o &_o such_o a_o rule_n as_o be_v authorize_v by_o god_n himself_o for_o then_o every_o man_n may_v make_v and_o unmake_v scripture_n at_o their_o pleasure_n &_o upon_o their_o own_o peril_n but_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o he_o can_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v away_o divine_a authority_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n can_v do_v this_o i_o demand_v first_o who_o be_v thou_o that_o compare_v thyself_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v true_a but_o yet_o let_v i_o tell_v thou_o this_o withal_o that_o though_o the_o church_n can_v give_v divine_a authority_n to_o any_o writing_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o true_o scripture_n nor_o take_v away_o the_o same_o from_o any_o part_n of_o that_o which_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n be_v scripture_n yet_o may_v the_o church_n declare_v what_o book_n be_v write_v by_o prophetical_a or_o apostolical_a man_n as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v and_o consequent_o by_o the_o finger_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o this_o may_v the_o church_n know_v partly_o by_o tradition_n other_o not_o know_v the_o same_o may_v without_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n doubt_v of_o their_o authority_n before_o the_o say_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n and_o partly_o also_o by_o the_o ever_o guide_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o her_o synod_n when_o any_o such_o weighty_a matter_n for_o direction_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v treat_v in_o which_o counsel_n the_o say_a church_n after_o due_a inquisition_n make_v and_o invocation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o her_o common_a custom_n be_v may_v no_o less_o conclude_v and_o bind_v all_o with_o visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la then_o do_v they_o of_o the_o first_o council_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o no_o private_a man_n have_v authority_n to_o do_v though_o luther_n and_o calvin_n presume_v to_o determine_v the_o same_o the_o four_o consideration_n the_o brief_a sum_n of_o all_o hitherto_o treat_v of_o in_o this_o second_o chapter_n concern_v the_o scripture_n be_v in_o effect_n try_v thus_o much_o first_o every_o believe_a &_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o man_n a_o christian_a catholic_a for_o that_o each_o sectary_n do_v offer_v this_o second_o that_o tradition_n without_o scripture_n may_v have_v continue_v as_o sufficient_a for_o instruction_n if_o god_n have_v so_o please_v according_a 1._o to_o that_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n before_o cite_v and_o this_o be_v prove_v for_o that_o both_o the_o church_n under_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o 2._o gospel_n be_v institute_v &_o ordain_v by_o tradition_n without_o scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n after_o that_o the_o church_n be_v first_o plant_v three_o the_o write_a 3._o scripture_n be_v distinguish_v &_o discern_v what_o be_v scripture_n and_o what_o not_o what_o canonical_a and_o what_o apocrypha_fw-la and_o that_o by_o tradition_n and_o this_o be_v all_o about_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o there_o rest_v yet_o the_o great_a 4._o point_n of_o all_o and_o of_o most_o importance_n behind_o and_o this_o be_v how_o true_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v right_o sense_v and_o interpret_v for_o if_o that_o of_o tertullian_n be_v true_a in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o his_o prescription_n tantùm_fw-la veritati_fw-la obstrepit_fw-la adulter_fw-la sensus_fw-la quantùm_fw-la &_o corruptor_n stylus_fw-la a_o false_a gloss_n mar_v the_o truth_n as_o much_o as_o a_o naughty_a text_n or_o that_o of_o s._n hierome_n nec_fw-la putemus_fw-la in_o verbis_fw-la ephes._n scripturarum_fw-la esse_fw-la euangelium_fw-la sedin_fw-fr sensu_fw-la non_fw-la in_o superficie_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o medulla_n non_fw-la in_o sermonum_fw-la foliis_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o radice_fw-la rationis_fw-la neither_o let_v we_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n rest_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o in_o the_o rind_n or_o barky_a letter_n of_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o marrow_n of_o the_o meaning_n not_o in_o the_o wordy_a leaf_n but_o in_o the_o root_n initium_fw-la of_o reason_n by_o a_o right_a understanding_n thereof_o or_o that_o of_o s._n augustine_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n si_fw-mi in_o scripture_n fanctis_fw-la profunda_fw-la sunt_fw-la mysteria_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la absconduntur_fw-la ne_fw-la vilescant_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la quaeruntur_fw-la ut_fw-la exerceant_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la aperiuntur_fw-la ut_fw-la passant_a if_o there_o be_v profound_a mystery_n in_o holy_a writ_n which_o be_v therefore_o hide_v that_o they_o become_v not_o vile_a therefore_o seek_v after_o that_o man_n may_v be_v exercise_v and_o set_v on_o work_n therefore_o disclose_v that_o they_o may_v feed_v last_o si_fw-mi mare_fw-la sit_fw-la divina_fw-la scriptura_fw-la habens_fw-la in_o se_fw-la sensus_fw-la constant._n prosundos_fw-la altitudinem_fw-la propheticorum_fw-la aenigmatum_fw-la as_o s._n ambrose_n aver_v if_o divine_a scripture_n be_v a_o sea_n contain_v in_o it_o bottomless_a depth_n of_o profound_a sense_n that_o be_v the_o depth_n of_o prophetical_a riddle_n question_n and_o prediction_n etc._n etc._n si_fw-mi machera_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o the_o same_o author_n have_v it_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sword_n with_o a_o sharp_a and_o cut_a edge_n oh_o then_o how_o wary_o ought_v we_o lucem_fw-la to_o walk_v in_o this_o way_n of_o sense_a scripture_n quae_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la epistola_fw-la quaedam_fw-la omnipotentis_fw-la dei_fw-la ad_fw-la creaturam_fw-la svam_fw-la as_o s._n gregory_n speak_v which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o certain_a epistle_n 40._o of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n unto_o his_o own_o creature_n 42._o if_o a_o subject_n shall_v either_o malicious_o or_o negligent_o misinterprete_v the_o letter_n of_o his_o prince_n and_o that_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o some_o great_a moment_n shall_v he_o escape_v severe_a punishment_n and_o shall_v the_o treacherous_a heretic_n who_o wilful_o scripture_n and_o malicious_o upon_o his_o own_o perverse_a choice_n deprave_v corrupt_v and_o misinterprete_v the_o scripture_n the_o letter_n epistle_n and_o proper_a hand-writing_n of_o his_o god_n escape_v deserve_v condemnation_n grande_n periculum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la loqui_fw-la ne_fw-la fortè_fw-la interpretatione_n perversa_fw-la de_fw-la euangelio_fw-la christi_fw-la hominis_fw-la fiat_fw-la euangelium_fw-la aut_fw-la quod_fw-la peius_fw-la est_fw-la diaboli_fw-la so_o s._n hierome_n it_o be_v no_o small_a 2._o hazard_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n least_o happy_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n become_v the_o gospel_n of_o man_n or_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o by_o a_o perverse_a and_o naughty_a interpretation_n be_v the_o scripture_n a_o bottomless_a sea_n and_o be_v there_o no_o danger_n of_o drown_v nay_o damn_v in_o hell_n if_o man_n be_v to_o busy_a with_o it_o to_o abuse_v it_o be_v the_o scripture_n a_o sword_n as_o s._n ambrose_n resemble_v it_o or_o a_o two-edged_a sword_n for_o so_o s._n
sense_n require_v the_o 9_o stay_n of_o a_o sure_a interpretation_n and_o this_o be_v only_o that_o which_o can_v make_v a_o man_n a_o true_a catholic_a christian._n 50._o s._n augustine_n among_o those_o manifold_a conflict_n which_o he_o have_v with_o the_o manichee_n concern_v the_o catholic_a church_n &_o her_o authority_n open_o and_o ingenuous_o profess_v church_n unto_o the_o say_a manichee_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o move_v he_o thereunto_o whence_o i_o do_v observe_v that_o if_o we_o receive_v the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o the_o gospel_n will_v not_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n then_o follow_v it_o necessary_o for_o the_o argument_n be_v draw_v àmaiore_fw-la ad_fw-la minus_fw-la that_o much_o more_o shall_v we_o depend_v and_o rely_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o take_v from_o she_o the_o true_a sense_n meaning_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o who_o we_o have_v believe_v and_o receive_v that_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o say_v the_o same_o father_n to_o his_o friend_n honoratn_n multò_fw-la facilius_fw-la mihi_fw-la persuaderem_fw-la christo_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la credendum_fw-la quam_fw-la de_fw-la illo_fw-la quidquam_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la per_fw-la quos_fw-la credidissem_fw-la esse_fw-la credendum_fw-la i_o shall_v much_o more_o easy_o persuade_v myself_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n at_o all_o then_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v concern_v he_o of_o any_o man_n but_o only_o of_o those_o who_o i_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v in_o christ._n can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o effectual_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n since_o this_o be_v the_o sole_a cause_n of_o his_o believe_v the_o gospel_n this_o be_v the_o only_a motive_n of_o his_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n 51._o but_o now_o whether_o protestant_n do_v follow_v this_o trade_n and_o way_n of_o true_a catholicisme_n in_o their_o sense_n and_o understand_v of_o scripture_n that_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o discover_v for_o when_o we_o come_v to_o particular_a controversy_n and_o to_o join_v issue_n together_o and_o that_o they_o and_o their_o adversary_n do_v allege_v scripture_n and_o expound_v the_o same_o then_o do_v it_o scripture_n appear_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n who_o follow_v a_o private_a interpretation_n and_o who_o adher_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n exposition_n for_o the_o roman_a catholic_a first_o desyring_n to_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o then_o willing_a to_o embrace_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n reflect_v upon_o the_o former_a interpretation_n of_o ancient_a church_n when_o the_o present_a controversy_n be_v not_o yet_o in_o hand_n and_o consequent_o when_o the_o exposition_n can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o in_o any_o semblable_a reason_n suspect_v to_o be_v wrest_v or_o wrong_o interpret_v by_o man_n of_o those_o age_n who_o neither_o fear_v nor_o favour_v any_o party_n but_o must_v needs_o be_v according_a to_o the_o common_a meaning_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o ancient_a time_n and_o this_o interpretation_n which_o the_o protestant_n also_o in_o some_o of_o their_o better_a humour_n do_v admit_v for_o good_a the_o catholic_a follow_v &_o upon_o this_o as_o upon_o the_o rock_n of_o god_n his_o word_n true_o sense_v by_o the_o church_n he_o stay_v himself_o &_o build_v his_o religion_n 52._o now_o the_o protestant_a being_n guilty_a in_o his_o conscience_n and_o know_v well_o that_o antiquity_n detest_v and_o have_v already_o anathematise_v his_o heresy_n he_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a by_o vociferation_n and_o exclamation_n seek_v to_o extenuate_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n much_o like_a to_o the_o thief_n or_o malefactor_n who_o arrest_v by_o the_o law_n to_o abide_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o same_o begin_v to_o rail_v &_o exclaim_v against_o his_o lawful_a ludge_n and_o iurour_n and_o then_o in_o his_o imagination_n he_o devise_v certain_a chimaera_n and_o idea_n of_o his_o church_n in_o former_a time_n in_o the_o air_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n which_o lineal_o say_v he_o but_o god_n know_v how_o for_o he_o know_v not_o descend_v unto_o luther_n and_o calvin_n etc._n etc._n and_o from_o these_o people_n partly_o and_o partly_o from_o himself_o frame_v the_o protestant_n his_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o upon_o this_o foundation_n buildeeh_o he_o all_o his_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o device_n 53._o and_o albeit_o all_o father_n do_v not_o always_o agree_v in_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n and_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n for_o that_o there_o may_v be_v be_v diverse_a sense_n of_o one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o before_o you_o have_v hear_v at_o large_a yet_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o run_v and_o strike_v upon_o the_o string_n the_o tongue_n and_o pen_n i_o mean_v of_o these_o ancient_a wortny_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o the_o variety_n that_o ever_o i_o can_v find_v yet_o among_o they_o sounded_z forth_o a_o heavenly_a harmony_n and_o neither_o iar_v not_o yet_o be_v dissonant_n from_o scripture_n verity_n or_o faith_n analogy_n so_o far_o be_v the_o church_n unity_n from_o all_o contrariety_n and_o very_o this_o diversity_n of_o antiquity_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o scripture_n without_o all_o repugnancy_n or_o any_o contrariety_n be_v no_o small_a motive_n unto_o i_o to_o embrace_v the_o present_a roman_a catholic_a religion_n which_o all_o so_o i_o find_v in_o they_o for_o i_o can_v not_o but_o conclude_v that_o as_o one_o spirit_n breathe_v out_o these_o scripture_n intend_v all_o these_o sense_n so_o the_o same_o spirit_n guide_v all_o and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n that_o neither_o the_o age_n wherein_o such_o father_n live_v nor_o any_o succeed_a century_n of_o the_o church_n reprehend_v their_o exposition_n for_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n ever_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n and_o thereby_o they_o know_v that_o such_o variety_n bree_v no_o contrariety_n whilst_o one_o father_n sense_v the_o scripture_n literal_o another_o allegorical_o and_o another_o mystical_o or_o anagogical_o but_o yet_o all_o to_o a_o pious_a sense_n and_o with_o no_o obstinate_a proteruity_n or_o animosity_n against_o that_o which_o the_o church_n do_v hold_v or_o determine_v for_o true_a 54._o and_o now_o to_o come_v unto_o some_o particular_a exposition_n or_o scripture_n by_o the_o father_n let_v we_o instance_n in_o the_o age_n of_o church_n s._n augustine_n for_o the_o protestant_n be_v wont_a to_o grant_v that_o the_o true_a church_n flourish_v in_o his_o time_n and_o his_o majesty_n also_o condescend_v to_o extend_v the_o trial_n of_o controversy_n to_o his_o time_n and_o somewhat_o further_o the_o same_o father_n write_v of_o this_o church_n we_o have_v former_o mention_v prove_v the_o 14._o same_o first_o to_o be_v visible_a and_o obvious_a unto_o every_o man_n eye_n against_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o protestant_n invisibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o he_o confirm_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n register_v by_o the_o evangelist_n matth._n 5._o a_o city_n upon_o a_o hill_n can_v be_v hide_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n can_v be_v invisible_a which_o be_v many_o time_n repeat_v by_o the_o same_o father_n 2._o to_o this_o effect_n as_o also_o forth_o of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n psal._n 18._o in_o sole_a posuit_fw-la tabernaculum_fw-la suum_fw-la he_o put_v his_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o sun_n that_o be_v he_o place_v his_o church_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v see_v of_o all_o man_n 55._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o same_o father_n apply_v and_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o christ_n matth._n 5_o about_o the_o visible_a candle_n place_v on_o the_o candlestick_n to_o signify_v the_o visibility_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n cry_v out_o against_o they_o qui_fw-la contra_fw-la lucernam_fw-la in_o candelabro_fw-la positamoculos_fw-la claudant_fw-la who_o wilful_o ibib_fw-la shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o candle_n place_v on_o the_o candlestick_n qui_fw-la tammagnam_fw-la montem_fw-la non_fw-la vident_fw-la who_o can_v see_v so_o great_a a_o hill_n as_o the_o church_n be_v and_o last_o for_o conclusion_n of_o all_o he_o give_v his_o censure_n of_o they_o in_o these_o word_n quid_fw-la amplius_fw-la sum_fw-la dicturus_fw-la qùam_fw-la caecos_fw-la esse_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o of_o they_o but_o that_o they_o be_v blnd_v thus_o do_v s._n augustine_n interpret_v and_o apply_v these_o scripture_n and_o many_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v throughout_o his_o whole_a tract_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la contra_fw-la petilianum_fw-la andel_n where_o 56._o and_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n to_o
he_o shall_v protest_v &_o confess_v open_o ten_o thousand_o time_n that_o he_o admit_v all_o the_o word_n and_o every_o syllable_n thereof_o 8._o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o a_o christian_a man_n his_o observation_n especial_o if_o he_o have_v either_o care_n or_o make_v any_o conscience_n to_o preserve_v himself_o believe_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o thereby_o to_o save_v his_o soul_n that_o albeit_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v with_o uniform_a verdict_n affirm_v that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n replenish_v and_o direct_v with_o no_o small_a measure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o now_o have_v be_v observe_v i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o discuss_v at_o this_o present_a whether_o every_o several_a article_n of_o the_o twelve_o which_o it_o contain_v be_v set_v dowue_a by_o several_a apostle_n though_o diverse_a grave_n and_o ancient_a father_n do_v affirm_v it_o yet_o be_v these_o article_n never_o hold_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n no_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o at_o this_o day_n either_o by_o catholic_a or_o protestant_n and_o if_o any_o man_n reply_n that_o they_o be_v consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o may_v be_v thence_o deduce_v i_o deny_v not_o that_o only_o i_o say_v this_o be_v nothing_o to_o argue_v that_o authority_n that_o they_o have_v obtain_v in_o the_o church_n since_o that_o all_o other_o write_n of_o orthodox_a man_n be_v both_o consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v deduce_v from_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o that_o esteem_n as_o the_o creed_n but_o my_o consequence_n that_o hereupon_o i_o infer_v be_v this_o that_o something_o must_v be_v grant_v of_o necessity_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o have_v be_v necessary_o believe_v in_o the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o by_o tradition_n only_o without_o any_o other_o foundaation_n and_o that_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christian_a religion_n 9_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o former_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n that_o this_o creed_n come_v down_o along_o through_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n and_o ruffinus_n say_v in_o his_o exposition_n of_o this_o creed_n idcirco_fw-la haec_fw-la nonscripta_fw-la font_n chartulis_fw-la atque_fw-la membranis_fw-la symbolum_n etc._n etc._n &_o therefore_o do_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v these_o thing_n not_o write_v in_o paper_n and_o parchment_n but_o to_o be_v retain_v in_o man_n heart_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o no_o man_n shall_v by_o read_v have_v the_o same_o for_o that_o write_n be_v accustom_v to_o come_v also_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o infidel_n aswell_o as_o christian_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v learn_v the_o same_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o ruffinus_n give_v of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o creed_n 10._o the_o very_a same_o have_v s._n hierome_n his_o word_n be_v clear_a in_o symbolo_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o spei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la say_v he_o non_fw-la scribitur_fw-la in_o chartis_fw-la &_o atramento_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o tabulis_fw-la cordis_fw-la carnalibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o creed_n that_o contain_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v church_n in_o paper_n and_o ink_n but_o in_o the_o fleshly_a table_n of_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o this_o do_v evident_o convince_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o understand_a man_n that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolic_a creed_n be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n unto_o christian_n and_o the_o church_n be_v put_v in_o trust_n with_o they_o to_o teach_v they_o unto_o her_o child_n before_o that_o any_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o that_o many_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o expound_v therein_o and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n learning_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n especial_o concern_v sacrament_n which_o be_v not_o express_v and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o s._n augustine_n and_o other_o father_n before_o he_o do_v often_o reiterate_v and_o frequent_o use_v that_o impsove_a kind_n of_o speech_n norum_n fideles_fw-la the_o faithful_a do_v know_v what_o belong_v unto_o these_o matter_n which_o purposely_o they_o do_v not_o reveal_v unto_o the_o ear_n of_o new_a christian_n least_o infidel_n may_v take_v any_o advantage_n thereby_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o my_o conclusion_n of_o this_o must_v of_o necessity_n hold_v correspondence_n with_o that_o former_a conclusion_n touch_v the_o argument_n of_o scripture_n to_o wit_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o never_o so_o open_o &_o plain_o profess_v that_o he_o do_v accept_v admit_v and_o believe_v this_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o refuse_v the_o understanding_n thereof_o expound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v in_o her_o sense_n he_o believe_v it_o not_o at_o all_o to_o salvation_n neither_o shall_v it_o avail_v he_o any_o more_o to_o admit_v the_o word_n and_o not_o receive_v the_o sense_n then_o if_o at_o once_o and_o altogether_o he_o reject_v both_o word_n and_o sense_n 11._o and_o here_o may_v some_o demand_n but_o where_o now_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a to_o find_v this_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n esspecial_o find_v in_o these_o distract_a time_n of_o schism_n when_o so_o many_o several_a sect_n plead_v for_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o according_a to_o christ_n his_o prophetical_a prediction_n here_o be_v christ_n and_o there_o be_v christ_n here_o be_v the_o church_n &_o there_o be_v the_o pure_a chospell_n here_o be_v the_o word_n true_o preach_v &_o there_o be_v the_o sacrament_n sincere_o administer_v &_o c_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v we_o shall_v easy_o come_v by_o this_o orthodox_a exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n if_o we_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v from_o age_n to_o age_n even_o until_o our_o time_n throughout_o every_o century_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a unless_o it_o be_v unto_o such_o as_o be_v blind_a as_o s._n augustine_n have_v already_o observe_v 12._o s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o time_n remit_v we_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o supreme_a pastor_n whereof_o be_v than_o siricius_n for_o our_o direction_n herein_o credatur_fw-la symbolum_n apostolorum_fw-la say_v he_o quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la rome_n ana_fw-la intemeratum_fw-la semper_fw-la custodit_fw-la &_o seruat_fw-la let_v faith_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v ever_o keep_v and_o preserve_v inviolated_a &_o yet_o be_v this_o upon_o the_o very_a point_n of_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n his_o ascension_n so_o as_o in_o that_o time_n and_o in_o this_o great_a saint_n and_o doctor_n judgement_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o the_o best_a and_o sure_a direction_n to_o know_v the_o true_a content_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o apostolic_a creed_n and_o consequent_o if_o our_o english_a ministry_n who_o at_o their_o ordination_n do_v subscribe_v unto_o this_o creed_n will_v follow_v also_o the_o same_o direction_n for_o the_o true_a understanding_n and_o sense_n thereof_o all_o matter_n will_v quick_o be_v reconcile_v &_o controversy_n accord_v but_o in_o default_n of_o this_o and_o for_o that_o pride_n and_o self_n will_v have_v so_o be_v witch_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o that_o they_o can_v in_o humility_n stoop_v down_o their_o private_a censure_n unto_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o great_a discord_n and_o difference_n that_o now_o be_v reign_v betwixt_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n and_o among_o protestant_n themselves_o concern_v the_o exposition_n thereof_o and_o this_o shall_v appear_v in_o part_n in_o the_o next_o ensue_a consideration_n of_o this_o chapter_n but_o yet_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o other_o consideration_n we_o shall_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o other_o creed_n mention_v here_o by_o his_o majesty_n 13._o the_o other_o creed_n then_o be_v the_o nieene_n conclude_v gratian._n as_o s._n ambrose_n note_v with_o the_o suffrage_n of_o 318._o renown_a father_n allude_v to_o the_o just_a number_n of_o abraham_n soldier_n when_o he_o rescue_v lot_n and_o of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o these_o be_v write_v upon_o occasion_n of_o heresy_n afterward_o arise_v and_o impugn_v some_o fundamental_a point_n &_o consequent_o athanasius_n be_v but_o explication_n of_o the_o former_a as_o his_o majesty_n do_v learned_o and_o excellent_o observe_v and_o therefore_o these_o do_v principal_o depend_v thereon_o this_o be_v evident_a if_o we_o reflect_v a_o little_a upon_o the_o principal_a subject_n of_o the_o 2._o
this_o suffice_v for_o this_o article_n 40._o let_v we_o now_o a_o little_a cast_v about_o and_o take_v a_o view_n of_o the_o nine_o article_n in_o order_n as_o the_o creed_n natural_o branch_v it_o and_o it_o be_v this_o credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o word_n of_o this_o article_n be_v agree_v upon_o on_o all_o part_n but_o the_o sense_n frame_v catholicam_fw-la thereupon_o and_o believe_v of_o different_a christian_n be_v most_o different_a and_o repugnant_a for_o first_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a &_o true_o catholic_a religion_n do_v according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o ancient_a father_n which_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o their_o faith_n understand_v by_o this_o catholic_a church_n that_o visible_a congregation_n of_o the_o first_o believe_v church_n christian_n gather_v together_o in_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n his_o ascension_n at_o which_o assembly_n the_o holy_a apostle_n themselves_o who_o make_v this_o article_n be_v present_a together_o with_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n and_o woman_n upon_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v enlighten_v they_o and_o inflame_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o further_o establish_v and_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n encourage_v they_o to_o go_v forwards_o manful_o without_o fear_n of_o any_o opposite_a humane_a power_n and_o promise_v they_o that_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n &_o assistance_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v with_o they_o and_o the_o director_n of_o they_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n to_o preserve_v this_o church_n and_o holy_a congregation_n in_o all_o necessity_n and_o extremity_n so_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o damnable_a error_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o 41._o moreover_o the_o say_a catholic_a christian_n do_v ever_o understand_v this_o church_n to_o be_v call_v holy_a in_o respect_n both_o of_o the_o great_a sanctity_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o many_o of_o her_o child_n who_o beside_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n gregory_n speak_v nay_o over_o and_o above_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n basill_n and_o s._n chyrsostome_n joint_o speak_v 5._o shall_v endeavour_v etiam_fw-la praecepta_fw-la legis_fw-la perfectiori_fw-la virtute_fw-la transcendere_fw-la to_o transcend_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n by_o devout_v themselves_o unto_o the_o observation_n of_o christ_n his_o high_a counsel_n of_o evangelicall_a perfection_n 42._o also_o this_o church_n be_v call_v holy_a for_o the_o immediate_a and_o perpetuate_v assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v she_o inward_o direct_v she_o outward_o and_o especial_o for_o the_o mean_n of_o sanctification_n convey_v unto_o she_o through_o the_o conduct_n of_o her_o sacrament_n as_o chief_a and_o most_o holy_a instrument_n to_o that_o effect_n confer_v grace_n for_o our_o assistance_n in_o the_o perform_n of_o all_o good_a work_n whereof_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n to_o salvation_n out_o of_o this_o church_n 43._o this_o church_n be_v also_o call_v catholic_a for_o the_o reason_n before_o set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o first_o consideration_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n and_o so_o have_v hitherto_o continue_v still_o and_o ever_o shall_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o further_o it_o have_v these_o sign_n and_o mark_n to_o be_v know_v by_o and_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o heretical_a congregation_n whatsoever_o to_o wit_n antiquity_n universality_n union_n and_o succession_n by_o descent_n of_o bishop_n and_o final_o for_o full_a complement_n it_o have_v that_o communion_n of_o saint_n both_o by_o union_n in_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n which_o no_o other_o schismatical_a conventicle_n or_o heretical_a congregation_n have_v and_o out_o of_o this_o communion_n there_o can_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o life_n or_o salvation_n 32._o all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o which_o here_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o omit_v do_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n understand_v by_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o it_o will_v require_v a_o whole_a volume_n to_o set_v down_o the_o several_a sentence_n discourse_n and_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n that_o joint_o concur_v in_o this_o exposition_n and_o explanation_n 44._o but_o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o article_n howsoever_o they_o do_v admit_v the_o same_o in_o word_n yea_o and_o subscribe_v thereunto_o in_o their_o ordination_n for_o that_o they_o teach_v their_o rligion_n to_o follow_v their_o state_n as_o their_o state_n bring_v in_o their_o religion_n yet_o exceed_o great_a be_v the_o difference_n and_o large_a be_v their_o conscience_n in_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o may_v appear_v in_o part_n out_o of_o the_o 19_o article_n publish_v by_o m._n rogers_n as_o agree_v upon_o by_o our_o english_a bishop_n concern_v the_o church_n about_o which_o he_o have_v seven_o several_a proposition_n first_o agree_v in_o some_o of_o they_o somewhat_o with_o the_o catholic_n and_o they_o have_v learn_v it_o from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o as_o their_o usual_a practice_n be_v and_o then_o make_v their_o own_o choice_n to_o dissent_v and_o disagree_v at_o their_o pleasure_n as_o the_o enure_v custom_n of_o all_o heretic_n have_v ever_o be_v 45._o his_o first_o proposition_n than_o be_v this_o there_o be_v a_o church_n 1._o of_o christ_n not_o only_o invisible_a but_o also_o visible_a whereto_o suppose_v he_o to_o understand_v of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o otherwise_o he_o say_v nothing_o we_o do_v also_o agree_v as_o their_o bishop_n church_n in_o like_a manner_n may_v be_v suppose_v to_o do_v and_o yet_o can_v i_o speak_v this_o upon_o my_o own_o knowledge_n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o common_a know_a tenant_n &_o practice_n of_o their_o academical_a school_n for_o there_o the_o question_n be_v among_o the_o most_o forward_a protestant_n a_o ecclesia_fw-la sit_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la whether_o the_o true_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o yet_o be_v hold_v affirmitive_o to_o wit_n 86._o that_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o visible_a to_o mansey_n for_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n tend_v to_o flat_a popery_n which_o they_o can_v endure_v 46._o his_o second_o proposition_n be_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n 2._o which_o we_o affirm_v also_o and_o they_o from_o we_o have_v learn_v so_o to_o speak_v and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o the_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o other_o sectary_n lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n can_v make_v one_o church_n they_o differ_v so_o fundamental_o among_o themselves_o and_o in_o such_o weighty_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n as_o they_o do_v 47._o his_o three_o assertion_n be_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_n church_n 3._o m._n rogers_n will_v have_v say_v or_o at_o least_o wise_a shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a be_v a_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o all_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a but_o all_o catholic_n church_n be_v visible_a and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o his_o incongruity_n of_o speech_n i_o do_v not_o see_v unless_o he_o mean_v thereby_o to_o steal_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a unto_o every_o visible_a congregation_n of_o sectary_n which_o be_v clear_o overthrow_v by_o the_o definition_n and_o large_a explication_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n 48._o his_o four_o proposition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v and_o 4._o for_o time_n be_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o senseless_a &_o gross_a absurdity_n for_o thereupon_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o before_o moses_n time_n the_o first_o writer_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o be_v more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n after_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n god_n have_v no_o church_n because_o there_o be_v extant_a no_o write_v word_n or_o scripture_n which_o be_v very_o ridiculous_a to_o affirm_v but_o the_o only_a refuge_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o perceive_v that_o m._n rogers_n have_v leave_v he_o to_o make_v good_a his_o four_o assertion_n in_o prove_v the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o church_n be_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o unwritten_a word_n but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n neither_o since_o we_o have_v only_o in_o this_o place_n to_o do_v with_o the_o literal_a or_o write_v word_n of_o god_n begin_v
to_o make_v good_a against_o they_o in_o the_o particular_a carriage_n and_o passage_n of_o this_o present_a business_n of_o counsel_n let_v we_o but_o leave_v the_o barky_a rind_n and_o outward_a cork_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o inward_a marrow_n and_o substance_n that_o be_v let_v we_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o their_o word_n but_o look_v into_o their_o deed_n and_o we_o shall_v easy_o discern_v yea_o the_o matter_n will_v disclose_v itself_o for_o to_o set_v their_o word_n aside_o who_o we_o have_v ever_o find_v contrary_a in_o their_o deed_n if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v sincere_o embrace_v and_o receive_v for_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o do_v resemble_v comprehend_v and_o present_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n for_o more_o than_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n together_o after_o christ_n then_o must_v it_o follow_v if_o they_o mean_v as_o they_o say_v and_o that_o their_o word_n shall_v not_o prove_v wind_n that_o the_o english_a church_n and_o our_o lay_a parliament_n must_v acknowledge_v and_o admit_v also_o that_o doctrine_n for_o catholic_n and_o orthodox_n which_o without_o impeachment_n controllement_fw-fr or_o contradiction_n of_o any_o can_v be_v substantial_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o hold_v in_o this_o visible_a universal_a church_n whereof_o these_o four_o council_n collective_o represent_v the_o whole_a body_n for_o all_o that_o tyme._n which_o foresay_a doctrine_n that_o both_o it_o and_o every_o point_n thereof_o pass_v for_o so_o many_o age_n uncontrolled_a this_o one_o reason_n may_v suffice_v to_o prove_v instead_o of_o all_o for_o that_o the_o say_v doctrine_n shall_v otherwise_o have_v be_v note_v espy_v out_o reprehend_v and_o censure_v by_o some_o of_o these_o counsel_n else_o have_v they_o not_o do_v their_o duty_n neither_o have_v they_o be_v so_o vigilant_a for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a body_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v if_o have_v condemn_v some_o heresy_n as_o they_o do_v they_o have_v wink_v at_o other_o which_o once_o to_o imagine_v of_o a_o ambrose_n a_o augustine_n &_o a_o hierome_n for_o the_o latin_a church_n a_o basill_n a_o chrysostome_n and_o a_o athanasius_n for_o the_o greek_a nay_o to_o suppose_v it_o and_o that_o confident_o though_o most_o impudent_o of_o all_o the_o great_a saint_n and_o learned_a doctor_n in_o the_o world_n together_o this_o can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o senseless_a absurdity_n gross_a stupidity_n yea_o heathenish_a impiety_n when_o as_o the_o least_o of_o these_o which_o i_o have_v name_v be_v for_o learning_n able_a to_o have_v resist_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o for_o their_o zeal_n will_v have_v spare_v none_o in_o a_o point_n of_o error_n or_o heresy_n as_o i_o may_v instance_n and_o prove_v by_o tertullian_n origen_n and_o s._n cyprian_a be_v any_o of_o these_o though_o never_o so_o great_a by_o the_o rest_n spare_v be_v any_o former_a merit_n though_o never_o so_o many_o respect_v if_o once_o they_o presume_v to_o innovate_v the_o least_o error_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o to_o strike_v at_o the_o point_n i_o aim_v at_o in_o the_o period_n of_o the_o conclusion_n do_v the_o english_a church_n and_o parliament_n admit_v all_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o continue_a without_o the_o impeachment_n of_o any_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o zealous_a &_o vigilant_a pastor_n in_o the_o church_n i_o think_v it_o will_v make_v great_a difficulty_n and_o let_v it_o reject_v they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o there_o need_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v that_o church_n to_o be_v heretical_a let_v it_o admit_v they_o it_o prove_v itself_o by_o departure_n from_o they_o and_o their_o doctrine_n to_o be_v apostatical_a for_o that_o it_o hould_v not_o the_o same_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o these_o four_o first_o counsel_n which_o it_o make_v show_v to_o receive_v and_o embrace_v in_o a_o word_n let_v it_o admit_v they_o or_o reject_v they_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o wipe_v away_o the_o blot_n and_o blemish_n imputation_n and_o innovation_n of_o damnable_a error_n from_o their_o church_n for_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o as_o also_o of_o some_o other_o particular_n thereto_o belong_v and_o hereupon_o necessary_o depend_v i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o decipher_v out_o these_o ensue_a consideration_n the_o first_o consideration_n my_o first_o consideration_n which_o i_o promise_v as_o the_o very_a err_v groundwork_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v this_o that_o the_o parliament_n and_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n of_o nyce_n constantinople_n ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n for_o orthodox_n and_o true_o catholic_a as_o represent_v in_o their_o bishop_n the_o complete_a and_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o their_o several_a age_n must_v needs_o acknowledge_v in_o like_a manner_n that_o for_o these_o first_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n or_o rather_o five_o hundred_o for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a nay_o possible_a that_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o fifty_o year_n the_o same_o shall_v now_o fail_v which_o have_v already_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n continue_v four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n the_o locis_fw-la true_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n consist_v not_o only_o of_o the_o elect_a and_o consequent_o be_v invisible_a but_o of_o good_a and_o bad_a and_o thereupon_o be_v visible_a under_o visible_a head_n and_o this_o be_v figure_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o net_n that_o catch_v both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n and_o by_o the_o field_n that_o bring_v forth_o good_a corn_n and_o weed_n and_o further_o that_o this_o visible_a external_a church_n in_o those_o day_n be_v the_o very_a same_o whereof_o christ_n word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o give_v this_o in_o charge_n to_o one_o upon_o occasion_n and_o supposal_n of_o 15._o a_o complaint_n make_v against_o his_o brother_n which_o if_o he_o succeed_v not_o then_o dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la tell_v the_o church_n as_o also_o that_o other_o of_o s._n paul_n that_o the_o church_n be_v columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n so_o as_o if_o a_o man_n in_o those_o day_n will_v have_v have_v any_o controversy_n in_o religion_n debate_v and_o resolve_v if_o he_o will_v have_v know_v what_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n have_v commit_v unto_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n for_o canonical_a &_o authentical_a and_o further_o if_o he_o desire_v to_o know_v which_o they_o be_v how_o they_o may_v be_v know_v from_o counterfeit_a how_o they_o may_v be_v true_o sense_v and_o right_o understand_v what_o and_o how_o many_o sacrament_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o church_n which_o they_o be_v what_o be_v their_o effect_n &_o operation_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v administer_v and_o such_o other_o like_a and_o if_o he_o be_v a_o jew_n or_o gentille_n that_o thus_o demand_v question_v these_o doubt_n and_o will_v upon_o the_o resolution_n thereof_o become_v a_o christian_n but_o be_v unlearned_a will_v be_v instruct_v in_o all_o these_o case_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v to_o have_v make_v his_o repair_n and_o recourse_n unto_o this_o external_a visible_a church_n and_o to_o have_v stand_v in_o all_o point_n whatsoever_o unto_o her_o final_a determination_n decision_n direction_n instruction_n and_o perpetual_a government_n in_o all_o these_o first_o five_o age_n without_o malapert_v repugnancy_n or_o obstinate_a reply_n if_o he_o ever_o intend_v to_o be_v save_v and_o if_o upon_o any_o animosity_n or_o pervicacity_n any_o man_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o that_o church_n in_o all_o that_o time_n either_o for_o interpret_n scripture_n in_o his_o own_o sense_n according_a to_o a_o private_a spirit_n or_o for_o pervert_v or_o innovate_a de_fw-la novo_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la of_o his_o own_o head_n or_o brain_n in_o any_o the_o least_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v both_o his_o damnation_n be_v by_o all_o hold_v and_o conclude_v for_o certain_a except_o he_o repent_v and_o listen_v yea_o and_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n that_o seek_v to_o reclaine_v he_o for_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o hold_v for_o god_n his_o high_a tribunal_n upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o irrefragable_a since_o the_o tribunal_n of_o heaven_n stand_v expect_v what_o be_v here_o do_v by_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n be_v ever_o ready_a to_o loose_v or_o bind_v to_o deliver_v over_o unto_o satan_n or_o to_o release_v from_o the_o band_n of_o sin_n error_n and_o heresy_n according_a unto_o the_o former_a pass_v doom_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n as_o among_o other_o father_n s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o
of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o his_o say_a majesty_n most_o royal_o offer_v to_o follow_v for_o open_v the_o window_n unto_o which_o light_n i_o have_v think_v it_o my_o bind_a duty_n both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n to_o take_v this_o small_a labour_n and_o to_o lay_v these_o few_o head_n of_o consideration_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o highness_n most_o wise_a judgement_n and_o understanding_n the_o six_o chapter_n contain_v a_o brief_a contemplation_n of_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v with_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n and_o now_o have_v handle_v these_o point_n at_o some_o more_o length_n then_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o have_v purpose_v i_o hope_v the_o benignity_n and_o clemency_n of_o his_o majesty_n will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n that_o leave_v the_o reader_n i_o do_v return_n unto_o he_o again_o as_o unto_o my_o most_o dear_o belove_v reverence_v and_o dread_a sovereign_n to_o lay_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o prudent_a consideration_n the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v consider_v of_o 2._o first_o then_o the_o point_n of_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a according_a unto_o the_o name_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n be_v of_o such_o importance_n necessity_n and_o consequence_n as_o have_v be_v show_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n that_o no_o riches_n in_o this_o world_n no_o wealth_n no_o treasure_n no_o state_n no_o power_n no_o policy_n no_o human_a felicity_n may_v be_v compare_v with_o it_o as_o right_o s._n augustine_n do_v intimate_v and_o for_o that_o your_o majesty_n eternal_a weal_n after_o the_o brief_a and_o transitory_a passage_n of_o this_o life_n depend_v thereof_o i_o can_v but_o most_o humble_o most_o hearty_o and_o most_o dutiful_o fall_v prostrate_a at_o your_o foot_n beseech_v you_o to_o give_v some_o serious_a attendance_n and_o catholic_a attention_n to_o this_o high_a and_o main_n point_n of_o everlasting_a salvation_n to_o seek_v out_o what_o be_v true_o catholic_a both_o in_o the_o church_n for_o who_o epitheton_fw-la the_o name_n be_v first_o by_o the_o apostle_n invent_v as_o also_o in_o particular_a man_n who_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a and_o who_o follow_v the_o rule_n which_o the_o name_n describe_v to_o wit_n he_o that_o in_o christian_a religion_n follow_v universality_n and_o not_o singularity_n the_o whole_a and_o not_o a_o part_n ancienty_n and_o novelty_n that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o conserve_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o not_o invent_v frame_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o late_a time_n 3._o and_o for_o that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n heresy_n be_v the_o opposite_a and_o contradictory_n unto_o catholic_a religion_n for_o that_o it_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o part_n to_o itself_o and_o thereby_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v the_o high_a sin_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v commit_v upon_o earth_n for_o that_o it_o overthrow_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o faith_n under_o pretence_n to_o establish_v heresy_n and_o reform_v faith_n my_o desire_n be_v so_o ardent_a in_o this_o point_n that_o your_o majesty_n shall_v enter_v into_o due_a consideration_n thereof_o as_o almighty_a god_n bear_v wirnesse_n unto_o my_o soul_n and_o spirit_n that_o nothing_o in_o this_o life_n stand_v more_o near_o my_o hart_n consider_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o next_o world_n the_o immutable_a weal_n or_o woe_n thereof_o the_o vae_fw-la or_o euge_a that_o each_o man_n be_v to_o receive_v as_o well_o prince_n as_o other_o and_o that_o these_o earthly_a princedom_n will_v seem_v but_o shadow_n at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o worthy_a one_o hour_n of_o that_o glory_n or_o misery_n that_o be_v to_o be_v get_v or_o lose_v by_o catholic_n religion_n or_o heresy_n in_o this_o life_n and_o this_o be_v my_o first_o contemplation_n and_o i_o shall_v pray_v almighty_a god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v also_o your_o majesty_n 4._o the_o second_o be_v about_o those_o four_o way_n propose_v by_o your_o majesty_n for_o aver_n catholicisme_n and_o clear_v from_o heresy_n which_o be_v the_o admit_v and_o believe_v of_o all_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o approve_v the_o four_o first_o counsel_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n in_o all_o which_o if_o with_o the_o admit_v in_o word_n there_o be_v also_o a_o propose_v true_a catholic_a sense_n no_o doubt_n but_o they_o do_v make_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o do_v condemn_v heresy_n but_o the_o importance_n of_o all_o stand_v in_o the_o exposition_n for_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o i_o think_v best_a myself_o or_o to_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o canonical_a or_o not_o canonical_a as_o i_o or_o some_o few_o with_o i_o of_o late_a time_n shall_v please_v to_o prescribe_v or_o to_o admit_v the_o three_o creed_n with_o that_o exposition_n of_o the_o article_n as_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v best_o allow_v or_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n in_o some_o thing_n and_o not_o in_o other_o or_o the_o first_o four_o hundred_o year_n of_o father_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o in_o my_o censure_n do_v agree_v with_o scripture_n be_v to_o reduce_v all_o to_o my_o own_o judgement_n a_o thing_n most_o opposite_a to_o catholicisme_n and_o proper_a to_o heresy_n as_o we_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v 5._o wherefore_o upon_o my_o knee_n i_o do_v most_o humble_o supplicate_v your_o majesty_n to_o consider_v well_o of_o this_o and_o especial_o of_o the_o last_o point_n concern_v the_o ancient_a father_n which_o do_v in_o effect_n contain_v all_o the_o rest_n for_o that_o these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o scripture_n together_o with_o the_o true_a understanding_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o first_o as_o from_o the_o apostle_n the_o other_o as_o from_o the_o church_n the_o three_o as_o from_o a_o private_a man_n but_o yet_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n wherein_o diverse_a of_o themselves_o sit_v as_o judge_n and_o bishop_n and_o have_v voyee_n and_o suffrage_n in_o the_o same_o these_o man_n be_v they_o that_o examine_v the_o controversy_n determine_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n condemn_a heresy_n a_o athematize_v heretic_n and_o clear_v the_o coast_n of_o all_o these_o wicked_a and_o turbulent_a encumbrance_n which_o seditious_a and_o headstrong_a spirit_n have_v raise_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o their_o contention_n 6._o and_o final_o these_o be_v they_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v use_v as_o sanne_n to_o winnow_v his_o corn_n &_o to_o purge_v the_o flore_fw-la of_o his_o church_n separate_v the_o chaff_n from_o the_o wheat_n and_o eroneous_a doctrine_n from_o the_o truth_n wherein_o they_o be_v so_o zealous_a and_o diligent_a labourer_n as_o not_o the_o least_o weed_n can_v spring_v up_o in_o this_o field_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o these_o careful_a good_a watchman_n and_o faithful_a gardener_n do_v present_o note_v and_o pursue_v the_o same_o until_o it_o be_v either_o root_v out_o or_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n and_o thereby_o as_o branch_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o vine_n suffer_v to_o wither_v away_o and_o to_o consume_v of_o themselves_o for_o proof_n father_n whereof_o we_o may_v allege_v as_o many_o example_n as_o there_o have_v be_v different_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n which_o albeit_o they_o ruffle_v much_o &_o mighty_o for_o the_o time_n and_o have_v often_o great_a prince_n king_n emperor_n and_o potentate_n to_o favour_n and_o patronize_v they_o as_o the_o protestant_n have_v now_o your_o majesty_n yet_o be_v they_o so_o consume_v in_o time_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o very_a name_n of_o many_o of_o they_o be_v now_o scarce_o remember_v and_o much_o less_o their_o argument_n reason_n proof_n and_o scripture_n which_o they_o bring_v for_o the_o same_o and_o be_v it_o not_o that_o in_o these_o father_n book_n who_o be_v their_o enemy_n some_o mention_n be_v make_v thereof_o we_o shall_v scarce_o know_v that_o there_o have_v be_v such_o man_n in_o the_o world_n 7._o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o church_n that_o condemn_v these_o man_n and_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n live_v therein_o remain_v ever_o both_o then_o and_o after_o victorious_a and_o shall_v do_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o still_o by_o succession_n and_o continuation_n the_o same_o church_n have_v come_v down_o from_o age_n to_o age_n &_o one_o age_n give_v testimony_n to_o another_o of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o say_a church_n
his_o sovereign_n i_o most_o humble_o prostrate_v myself_o at_o your_o majesty_n princely_a foot_n beseech_v you_o even_o out_o of_o that_o royal_a disposition_n &_o princely_a benignity_n of_o good_a nature_n wherewith_o almighty_a god_n have_v be_v please_v plentiful_o to_o enrich_v you_o first_o that_o you_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v these_o point_n or_o head_n several_o and_o sound_o debate_v and_o discuss_v by_o the_o equal_a match_n &_o trial_n of_o learned_a man_n on_o both_o side_n either_o your_o majesties_n natural_a subject_n or_o stranger_n as_o shall_v best_o likeyou_n and_o by_o no_o man_n persuasion_n or_o dissuasion_n to_o go_v back_o from_o so_o honourable_a a_o offer_n already_o make_v unto_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o second_o not_o to_o condemn_v i_o of_o any_o audacious_a or_o headlong_a presumption_n in_o this_o my_o interprize_n tend_v only_o to_o god_n glory_n and_o your_o own_o soule-saving_a honour_n nor_o yet_o last_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n to_o take_v in_o evil_a part_n or_o sinister_a sense_n this_o my_o charitable_a and_o well-meaning_a attempt_n of_o lay_v some_o moderate_a and_o modest_a consideration_n before_o your_o judicious_a &_o grave_a wisdom_n and_o the_o rather_o i_o presume_v to_o beg_v this_o at_o your_o majesty_n hand_n since_o i_o have_v resolve_v to_o limit_v my_o discourse_n within_o the_o list_n and_o bound_n of_o those_o four_o principal_a head_n mention_v by_o your_o majesty_n and_o worthy_a of_o eternal_a memory_n 9_o and_o if_o unjust_a cause_n now_o and_o then_o upon_o due_a convince_a circumstance_n admit_v a_o just_a defence_n then_o pardon_v i_o dread_a sovereign_n and_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o bring_v my_o most_o just_a defence_n unto_o so_o just_a a_o cause_n i_o want_v not_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a weight_n to_o induce_v i_o for_o first_o my_o own_o interest_n of_o soul_n go_v therein_o high_o impawn_v and_o engage_v in_o this_o very_a point_n as_o have_v among_o other_o my_o motive_n make_v my_o own_o resolution_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n upon_o the_o consideration_n and_o foundation_n of_o these_o most_o catholic_n ground_n to_o wit_n of_o scripture_n creed_n counsel_n and_o ancient_a father_n and_o therefore_o it_o import_v i_o not_o a_o little_a touch_v i_o so_o near_o to_o look_v they_o over_o again_o since_o the_o everliving_a weal_n or_o never-dying_a woe_n of_o my_o soul_n depend_v necessary_o thereupon_o and_o secondary_o my_o loyal_a duty_n unto_o your_o majesty_n and_o charity_n to_o my_o native_a countryman_n plead_v for_o my_o defence_n and_o this_o be_v such_o that_o it_o enforce_v i_o to_o encounter_v all_o kind_n of_o difficultye_n in_o the_o undergo_n of_o this_o business_n for_o since_o upon_o my_o second_o review_v of_o the_o former_a four_o ground_n i_o find_v that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v no_o other_o rule_n of_o faith_n devise_v by_o any_o no_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o quod_fw-la unum_fw-la est_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o verum_fw-la quod_fw-la nonvariat_fw-la according_a to_o that_o most_o sure_a and_o ancient_a prescription_n i_o think_v myself_o in_o all_o conscience_n and_o duty_n both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n oblige_v to_o impart_v the_o same_o with_o your_o majesty_n be_v my_o natural_a bear_a prince_n king_n father_n lord_n and_o sovereign_n and_o i_o your_o dutiful_a &_o devote_a subject_n 10._o final_o if_o that_o renown_a moralist_n plutarch_n compile_v a_o special_a treatise_n to_o instruct_v a_o man_n how_o he_o shall_v reap_v benefit_n unto_o himself_o even_o by_o the_o admonition_n &_o endeavour_n of_o his_o profess_a enemy_n if_o that_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o patience_n job_n for_o so_o the_o scripture_n decypher_v he_o unto_o we_o plead_v his_o innocency_n out_o of_o the_o integrity_n of_o his_o conscience_n and_o appeal_n unto_o the_o tribunal_n of_o heaven_n for_o a_o impartial_a doom_n insinuate_v unto_o we_o by_o way_n of_o demand_n that_o he_o listen_v unto_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o servant_n or_o handmaid_n contend_v with_o he_o his_o word_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o english_a be_v expostulatory_a if_o i_o have_v refuse_v the_o counsel_n of_o my_o servant_n or_o handmaid_n contend_v with_o i_o and_o the_o answer_v imply_v be_v negative_a that_o he_o have_v not_o as_o evident_o appear_v by_o his_o summon_n himself_o to_o the_o bar_n of_o divine_a justice_n how_o much_o rather_o shall_v we_o accept_v the_o same_o from_o our_o friend_n and_o how_o much_o more_o so_o great_a a_o monarch_n as_o your_o majesty_n be_v may_v be_v please_v to_o take_v in_o good_a part_n the_o dutiful_a counsel_n of_o such_o of_o your_o loyal_a subject_n who_o from_o their_o innermost_a soul_n wish_v all_o possible_a good_a even_o external_a internal_a &_o eternal_a prosperity_n unto_o your_o majesty_n notwithstanding_o any_o malicious_a clamour_n suggestion_n detraction_n and_o calumniation_n of_o adversary_n to_o the_o contrary_a or_o any_o difference_n of_o judgement_n on_o part_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n wish_v and_o pray_v with_o pure_a hand_n and_o innocent_a heart_n lift_v up_o unto_o almighty_a god_n that_o this_o may_v be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o also_o in_o time_n that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v above_o all_o and_o in_o all_o and_o over_o all_o so_o there_o may_v be_v but_o one_o union_n and_o communion_n in_o catholic_a christian_n religion_n that_o be_v one_o catholic_a mother_n church_n for_o every_o sinful_a wander_a and_o distress_a soul_n to_o fly_v unto_o for_o her_o spiritual_a repose_n that_o after_o our_o seafaring_a peregrination_n we_o may_v all_o arrive_v safe_o in_o the_o haven_n of_o heaven_n 11._o to_o conclude_v of_o this_o number_n of_o subject_n do_v i_o joyful_o profess_v myself_o to_o be_v most_o sincere_o promyse_v and_o protest_v unto_o your_o majesty_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o catholic_a christian_a the_o only_a interest_n whereby_o i_o hope_v to_o lay_v claim_n to_o heaven_n that_o i_o be_o in_o verity_n and_o indeed_o without_o all_o fraud_n or_o collusion_n even_o such_o a_o one_o as_o sincere_o i_o have_v set_v down_o myself_o here_o to_o be_v that_o be_v neither_o priest_n nor_o jesuite_n nor_o yet_o of_o any_o other_o religious_a order_n but_o only_o of_o the_o order_n and_o society_n of_o the_o english_a ministry_n whereof_o i_o be_v make_v by_o a_o bishop_n of_o your_o majesty_n realm_n and_o licence_v to_o preach_v by_o public_a authority_n for_o diverse_a year_n together_o wherein_o as_o i_o travail_v painful_o so_o i_o shall_v have_v continue_v constant_o have_v i_o not_o evident_o discover_v even_o in_o calvin_n the_o first_o author_n of_o that_o schism_n and_o in_o all_o his_o follower_n novelty_n herefy_v blasphemy_n instead_o of_o antiquity_n verity_n piety_n and_o albeit_o my_o judgement_n in_o religion_n now_o must_v needs_o be_v change_v from_o they_o unless_o to_o the_o eternal_a perdition_n of_o my_o soul_n i_o shall_v with_o a_o guilty_a conscience_n fight_v against_o heaven_n in_o fight_v against_o the_o know_a catholic_a truth_n as_o i_o fear_v i_o too_o many_o of_o the_o learnede_a sort_n of_o protestant_n in_o england_n do_v yet_o remain_v i_o still_o and_o ever_o shall_v by_o god_n his_o save_a grace_n with_o all_o dutiful_a observance_n towards_o your_o majesty_n out_o of_o which_o duty_n of_o a_o subject_n towards_o his_o sovereign_n i_o shall_v incessant_o pour_v forth_o my_o prayer_n and_o tear_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o heaven_n &_o implore_v the_o god_n of_o truth_n to_o lead_v your_o majesty_n into_o all_o truth_n that_o you_o may_v here_o according_a to_o that_o high_a place_n wherein_o god_n have_v set_v you_o help_v to_o rear_v up_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a that_o you_o may_v become_v a_o glorious_a member_n of_o the_o triumphant_a 12._o and_o now_o have_v be_v long_a and_o more_o prolix_a in_o this_o my_o epistle_n dedicatory_a then_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o have_v purpose_v i_o shall_v most_o humble_o supplicate_v your_o say_a excellent_a majesty_n to_o licence_v i_o for_o a_o time_n to_o depart_v from_o your_o royal_a presence_n and_o to_o turn_v my_o speech_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n in_o treat_v of_o the_o head_n that_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o seem_v not_o convenient_a for_o i_o to_o continue_v my_o speech_n for_o so_o long_a time_n unto_o your_o majesty_n own_o person_n but_o rather_o with_o due_a reverence_n decline_v the_o same_o to_o lay_v forth_o before_o the_o discreet_a reader_n these_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v of_o most_o consideration_n and_o ponderation_n in_o the_o point_v propose_v by_o your_o majesty_n whereby_o many_o may_v be_v inform_v though_o one_o be_v name_v and_o with_o this_o i_o beseech_v the_o
great_a s._n beda_n for_o the_o latin_a but_o for_o that_o i_o will_v not_o be_v prolix_a and_o because_o i_o hasten_v to_o my_o second_o consideration_n which_o be_v the_o very_a main_a conclusion_n of_o all_o my_o whole_a discourse_n hitherunto_o i_o will_v knit_v up_o all_o with_o that_o golden_a admonition_n of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n a_o 5._o author_n which_o who_o so_o read_v and_o believe_v it_o be_v impossible_a if_o he_o will_v profess_v any_o religion_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v aught_o else_o but_o a_o roman_a catholic_a well_o his_o word_n be_v these_o catholic_a let_v we_o hold_v that_o say_v he_o which_o have_v be_v believe_v general_o of_o all_o for_o that_o this_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o catholic_a as_o the_o very_a nature_n &_o signification_n of_o the_o name_n do_v import_v and_o then_o for_o further_a explication_n he_o give_v a_o threefold_a prescription_n for_o a_o more_o sure_a and_o infallible_a direction_n and_o this_o be_v universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_v all_o which_o he_o must_v as_o time_n and_o occasion_n serve_v adhere_v unto_o that_o will_v be_v account_v true_o catholic_a and_o yet_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o four_o chapter_n he_o illustrate_v the_o first_o prescription_n of_o universality_n most_o pertinent_a for_o our_o purpose_n at_o this_o time_n by_o way_n of_o supposition_n and_o question_n move_v and_o answer_v his_o word_n be_v these_o what_o then_o shall_v a_o catholic_n christian_n do_v if_o any_o parcel_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v cut_v itself_o of_o from_o communion_n of_o the_o universal_a faith_n this_o be_v the_o question_n move_v the_o answer_n follow_v what_o else_o forsooth_o shall_v he_o do_v but_o that_o he_o prefer_v the_o health_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n before_o any_o one_o pestilent_a and_o corrupt_a member_n thereof_o 20._o and_o hereupon_o i_o begin_v to_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a consideration_n and_o a_o severe_a examination_n of_o my_o own_o conscience_n in_o a_o secret_a recollect_v and_o most_o retire_a conference_n betwixt_o god_n and_o my_o own_o soul_n touch_v matter_n of_o religion_n as_o they_o shall_v either_o doom_n i_o or_o save_v i_o at_o the_o last_o day_n first_o i_o consider_v yea_o and_o serious_o within_o my_o own_o hart_n debate_v demand_v of_o myself_o whether_o the_o protestant_n church_n and_o doctrine_n whereof_o i_o then_o be_v a_o real_a and_o formal_a member_n and_o professor_n have_v not_o cut_v itself_o of_o yea_o depart_a and_o separate_v itself_o from_o the_o union_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o universal_a faith_n and_o from_o the_o save_n and_o convert_n gospel_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v first_o to_o be_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n as_o christ_n 14._o promise_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v before_o the_o world_n great_a destruction_n and_o general_a consummation_n this_o be_v my_o first_o demand_n and_o the_o answer_n return_v unto_o i_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o ancient_a father_n upon_o view_n of_o religion_n their_o doctrine_n and_o compare_v it_o etc._n etc._n nay_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n since_o it_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v the_o guider_n and_o director_n of_o his_o church_n i_o say_v the_o answer_n return_v be_v that_o the_o protestant_n church_n &_o doctrine_n have_v abandon_v both_o catholic_n name_n &_o catholic_n faith_n and_o therefore_o as_o beam_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o sun_n as_o bough_n violent_o break_v of_o from_o the_o tree_n and_o stream_n and_o channel_n part_v and_o separate_v from_o their_o original_a fountain_n as_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v they_o eccles._n be_v to_o perish_v vanish_v and_o come_v to_o naught_o and_o now_o what_o course_n remain_v for_o i_o to_o take_v if_o i_o regard_v at_o all_o the_o welfare_n of_o my_o soul_n but_o to_o follow_v the_o sage_a &_o weighty_a counsel_n of_o my_o foresay_a author_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n my_o author_n indeed_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n next_o under_o god_n of_o my_o conversion_n from_o heresy_n to_o catholic_a religion_n and_o that_o be_v to_o prefer_v the_o health_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n before_o any_o one_o pester_v and_o infest_a member_n thereof_o his_o meaning_n in_o plain_a term_n be_v that_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n or_o in_o particular_a country_n apostasy_n from_o the_o catholic_a christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n every_o catholic_a christian_n that_o be_v already_o in_o the_o church_n must_v hoover_n under_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o church_n by_o retire_v into_o her_o lap_n and_o bosom_n in_o time_n of_o any_o danger_n and_o he_o that_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o of_o a_o heretical_a congregation_n and_o consequent_o forth_o of_o the_o church_n must_v endeavour_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a to_o become_v a_o catholic_a by_o return_v again_o unto_o the_o communion_n of_o catholic_n religion_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o salvation_n 21._o this_o first_o consideration_n i_o enlarge_v yet_o further_o extend_v it_o by_o a_o second_o supposition_n to_o wit_n if_o the_o protestant_n church_n and_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a indeed_o as_o they_o will_v bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v than_o it_o have_v be_v general_o reaceave_v of_o christian_n over_o all_o christendom_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o opposition_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n then_o the_o protestant_n can_v produce_v visible_a church_n of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v extant_a from_o the_o apostle_n time_n downward_o hitherto_o that_o have_v hold_v the_o self_n same_o point_n of_o doctrine_n the_o self_n same_o number_n of_o sacrament_n &_o other_o such_o difference_n as_o now_o protestant_n church_n have_v in_o they_o from_o the_o roman_a they_o according_a to_o that_o most_o sure_a prescription_n of_o tertullian_n they_o can_v edere_fw-la origines_fw-la 32._o ecclesiarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la evoluere_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la declare_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n they_o can_v turn_v over_o and_o bring_v forth_o a_o orderly_a succession_n of_o bishop_n run_v on_o as_o he_o say_v from_o the_o very_a beginning_n and_o continue_v catholic_n without_o any_o interruption_n to_o the_o apostle_n time_n then_o can_v they_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o bishop_n that_o hold_v these_o difference_n be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v by_o some_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n for_o so_o say_v tertullian_n can_v the_o church_n of_o the_o smyrnean_o prove_v their_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n policarpus_fw-la ordain_v by_o s._n john_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n prove_v from_o s._n clement_n place_v by_o s._n peter_n in_o one_o word_n 32._o then_o according_a to_o another_o prescription_n of_o tertullian_n can_v 22._o they_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n as_o now_o it_o stand_v in_o contradiction_n with_o we_o conspire_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o original_n apostolical_a and_o mother_n church_n and_o that_o they_o hold_v that_o very_a doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n and_o that_o the_o same_o have_v continue_v by_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o of_o they_o these_o thing_n if_o they_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a sound_o and_o substantial_o to_o prove_v on_o their_o part_n then_o shall_v i_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o and_o their_o religion_n be_v catholic_a indeed_o and_o that_o out_o of_o their_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 22._o but_o if_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v by_o they_o attempt_v and_o can_v never_o yet_o be_v prove_v by_o they_o nay_o if_o their_o affirmative_a have_v be_v disprove_v by_o a_o negative_a in_o all_o the_o forename_a note_n mark_n prescription_n of_o the_o church_n and_o against_o heretic_n as_o be_v already_o too_o apparent_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n then_o let_v they_o at_o the_o last_o upon_o so_o manifest_a a_o conviction_n ingenuous_o confess_v that_o the_o denomination_n of_o heretic_n rather_o than_o the_o appellation_n of_o catholuke_n do_v proper_o apertaine_v unto_o they_o 23._o and_o albeit_o i_o can_v but_o understand_v that_o the_o heretic_n of_o ancient_a time_n and_o all_o modern_a sectary_n in_o these_o our_o unhappy_a day_n both_o in_o germany_n france_n holland_n scotland_n and_o england_n do_v ambitious_o affect_v this_o renown_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o have_v it_o give_v unto_o their_o heretical_a congregation_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o howsoever_o they_o do_v fraudulent_o sometime_o clothe_v themselves_o in_o sheep_n skin_n when_o surreptitious_o they_o invest_v themselves_o with_o this_o high_a title_n &_o supreme_a dignity_n of_o a_o catholic_n though_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o themselves_o they_o be_v never_o so_o much_o opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o each_o condemn_v other_o for_o heretic_n nay_o damn_v themselves_o among_o themselves_o and_o
child_n and_o after_o the_o say_a law_n be_v write_v also_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v not_o remit_v promiscuous_o hand_n over_o head_n to_o the_o read_n of_o those_o book_n but_o he_o be_v send_v to_o take_v his_o instruction_n and_o institution_n from_o the_o ordinary_a superior_n doctor_n governor_n of_o that_o church_n and_o these_o be_v to_o expound_v the_o law_n unto_o he_o for_o which_o direction_n and_o tradition_n we_o find_v this_o warrant_n and_o command_v yea_o prescribe_v authority_n ask_v thy_o father_n and_o 7._o they_o will_v tell_v thou_o thy_o elder_n and_o they_o will_v declare_v unto_o thou_o again_o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n preserve_v knowledge_n and_o yet_o in_o a_o three_o place_n i_o know_v that_o abraham_n will_v demand_v and_o teach_v his_o son_n and_o househould_v 19_o that_o they_o walk_v in_o my_o way_n etc._n etc._n 17._o and_o now_o to_o come_v from_o the_o law_n to_o the_o gospel_n from_o moses_n unto_o christ_n and_o so_o to_o proceed_v orderly_o with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n as_o god_n be_v no_o changeling_n but_o ever_o like_o himself_o even_o so_o the_o beginning_n proceed_v establish_v of_o the_o new_a christian_a faith_n and_o church_n be_v not_o much_o unlike_a if_o not_o altogether_o resemble_v the_o former_a for_o first_o this_o church_n be_v plant_v by_o our_o saviour_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o speedy_o by_o the_o industrious_a ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n assist_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o neither_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o apostle_n the_o principal_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n have_v as_o at_o this_o time_n any_o write_a instruction_n or_o methodical_a institution_n deliver_v unto_o they_o concern_v their_o teach_n preach_v or_o believe_v except_o only_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n in_o the_o church_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o subsequent_a consideration_n second_o the_o institution_n that_o they_o have_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o instruction_n from_o our_o saviour_n his_o mouth_n and_o from_o the_o immediate_a instinct_n suggestion_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v promise_v by_o christ_n himself_o who_o can_v not_o lie_v nor_o deceive_v to_o assist_v the_o church_n continual_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n and_o by_o this_o institution_n and_o inspiration_n alone_o 20._o they_o teach_v and_o convert_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n institute_v church_n establish_v law_n and_o order_n of_o life_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o tradition_n only_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n before_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o some_o year_n and_o that_o in_o the_o infancy_n and_o purity_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o protestant_n must_v perforce_o confess_v three_o when_o the_o wisdom_n of_o heaven_n think_v it_o expedient_a that_o something_o shall_v be_v write_v the_o first_o thing_n commit_v unto_o write_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o this_o be_v collect_v and_o digest_v in_o that_o very_a order_n as_o it_o be_v now_o present_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o some_o eight_o year_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n then_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v some_o five_o year_n after_o that_o &_o then_o that_o of_o s._n luke_n write_v twelve_o year_n after_o the_o former_a wherein_o diverse_a thing_n omit_v in_o the_o other_o gospel_n of_o be_v record_v and_o last_o of_o all_o be_v write_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n contain_v in_o it_o many_o great_a and_o important_a matter_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o be_v not_o write_v of_o 66._o year_n after_o the_o first_o visible_a christian_a church_n be_v plant_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 18._o and_o now_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v write_v upon_o particular_a scripture_n occasion_n so_o especial_o be_v this_o famous_a gospel_n of_o s._n john_n which_o be_v the_o very_a key_n open_v the_o door_n unto_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o particular_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o ebion_n and_o cerinthus_n their_o heresy_n which_o impugn_a the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n whereupon_o i_o do_v infer_v that_o for_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o church_n be_v for_o diverse_a year_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o and_o for_o 66._o year_n which_o be_v the_o age_n of_o a_o man_n the_o point_n relate_v by_o s._n john_n more_o than_o be_v utter_v in_o the_o other_o ghospell_n which_o be_v many_o and_o most_o important_a be_v receive_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n only_o and_o now_o for_o conclusion_n of_o all_o i_o will_v demand_v but_o one_o thing_n of_o the_o protestant_n that_o make_v such_o show_n of_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n &_o this_o be_v demand_v above_o 1400._o year_n ago_o by_o s._n irenaus_n before_o cite_v who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o 4._o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o very_a like_o occasion_n sineque_fw-la apostoli_fw-la scripturas_fw-la reliquissent_fw-la nobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o yet_o ought_v not_o we_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o leave_v to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v their_o church_n so_o that_o holy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n especial_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n since_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o save_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n continue_v for_o 2000_o year_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o many_o other_o year_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n only_o without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o word_n write_v 19_o whereby_o we_o can_v but_o discern_v and_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o scripture_n or_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o absolute_a necessary_a for_o the_o reveal_n of_o god_n his_o will_n unto_o man_n kind_n and_o the_o continue_n of_o man_n in_o that_o save_a knowledge_n of_o he_o but_o that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n may_v have_v propagate_v and_o preserve_v his_o doctrine_n and_o man_n in_o the_o truth_n by_o tradition_n only_o of_o word_n of_o mouth_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o as_o he_o do_v for_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n together_o both_o before_o the_o first_o great_a deluge_n by_o water_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o first_o patriarch_n until_o abraban_n his_o time_n who_o he_o choose_v for_o the_o head_n of_o his_o people_n as_o also_o afterwards_o when_o he_o direct_v the_o same_o people_n by_o like_a tradition_n as_o well_o in_o egypt_n where_o they_o remain_v in_o most_o cruel_a bondage_n for_o 400._o year_n as_o else_o where_o before_o moses_n write_v his_o forename_a book_n and_o the_o like_a he_o may_v have_v do_v with_o christian_n to_o the_o world_n great_a general_a consummation_n &_o last_o inundation_n by_o a_o flood_n of_o fire_n according_a to_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o sentence_n if_o he_o have_v list_v as_o have_v institute_v a_o more_o orderly_o exact_a and_o authorize_v church_n yea_o and_o have_v endue_v it_o with_o great_a privilege_n according_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o new_a law_n above_o the_o old_a than_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o the_o former_a of_o the_o jew_n whereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v by_o force_n of_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o this_o church_n and_o pure_a authority_n thereof_o both_o in_o propound_v scripture_n unto_o we_o and_o discern_v the_o same_o which_o be_v true_o scripture_n and_o which_o be_v not_o as_o also_o for_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mean_v thereof_o in_o their_o interpretation_n and_o exposition_n be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v respect_v by_o we_o than_o be_v that_o of_o the_o jew_n forasmuch_o as_o christ_n our_o saviour_n promise_v the_o continual_a assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o this_o church_n and_o that_o in_o such_o measure_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v alone_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v all_o the_o infernal_a power_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n idest_fw-la the_o very_a entrance_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o error_n or_o here_o into_o it_o whatsoever_o 20._o these_o then_o that_o never_o so_o solemn_o and_o never_o so_o scripture_n confident_o profess_v that_o they_o for_o their_o part_n do_v believe_v and_o follow_v the_o scripture_n without_o due_a reference_n or_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n forsomuch_o as_o all_o sectary_n and_o heretikc_n that_o
by_o moses_n the_o first_o pen_n man_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o successive_o upon_o sundry_a occasion_n continue_v 49._o m._n rogers_n his_o first_o proposition_n be_v that_o the_o mark_n church_n and_o token_n of_o their_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o these_o mark_n be_v not_o admit_v by_o the_o catholic_n but_o worthy_o reject_v for_o that_o they_o be_v as_o hard_o and_o obscure_a to_o find_v out_o and_o as_o much_o controvert_v as_o the_o thing_n itself_o whereof_o they_o shall_v be_v mark_n for_o that_o all_o part_n yea_o all_o sect_n and_o heresy_n do_v pretend_v to_o have_v due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v as_o hard_a a_o matter_n to_o determine_v this_o controversy_n as_o the_o other_o viz._n to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o mark_v of_o antiquity_n universality_n unity_n and_o succession_n before_o mention_v and_o give_v by_o catholic_n for_o such_o be_v tertullians_n 1400._o year_n ago_o when_o he_o write_v that_o excellent_a book_n of_o prescription_n and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n 1200._o year_n since_o to_o take_v away_o your_o late_a imputation_n and_o denomination_n of_o papist_n unto_o catholic_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o themselves_o that_o present_o they_o will_v distinguish_v betwixt_o one_o church_n and_o another_o betwixt_o roman_a catholic_n and_o all_o heretical_a sectary_n and_o albeit_o some_o sectary_n be_v press_v therewith_o will_v pretend_v to_o have_v these_o mark_n in_o their_o church_n and_o will_v set_v a_o good_a face_n upon_o the_o matter_n and_o challenge_v they_o also_o yet_o be_v these_o word_n out_o before_o they_o be_v aware_a for_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o evident_a against_o they_o they_o present_o give_v over_o their_o claim_n they_o be_v content_a to_o hold_v hand_n of_o run_v to_o other_o obscure_a mark_n the_o common_a plea_n of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n of_o the_o due_a and_o true_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n when_o god_n wot_v they_o have_v neither_o word_n nor_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a integrity_n and_o sincerity_n 50._o m._n rogers_n six_o proposition_n about_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o true_a &_o catholic_n church_n 6._o may_v and_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n err_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o conversation_n which_o assertion_n the_o catholic_n in_o his_o sense_n do_v hold_v for_o so_o blasphemous_a and_o absurd_a yea_o ridiculous_a also_o as_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o the_o true_a visible_a catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n can_v err_v and_o induce_v into_o error_n then_o be_v there_o no_o surety_n or_o certainty_n in_o the_o world_n no_o not_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o assure_v we_o the_o contrary_a 51._o but_o let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o m._n roger_n proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n for_o confirm_v this_o his_o six_o assertion_n which_o err_v sure_o be_v so_o fantastical_a and_o impertinent_a for_o any_o consequence_n to_o be_v draw_v from_o they_o so_o absurd_a in_o reason_n and_o ridiculous_a in_o religion_n that_o no_o man_n of_o judgement_n or_o conscience_n can_v read_v they_o without_o indignation_n and_o laughter_n as_o by_o the_o view_n will_v appear_v for_o thus_o he_o set_v they_o down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n only_o i_o will_v add_v the_o inference_n upon_o every_o probation_n out_o of_o scripture_n his_o first_o place_n be_v take_v heed_n matth._n 24._o 4._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v believe_v it_o not_o matth._n 23._o 26._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisye_n and_o of_o the_o leaven_n of_o herod_n mar._n 8._o 15._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v many_o shall_v be_v deceive_v yea_o the_o very_a elect_a be_v it_o possible_a matth._n 24._o 11._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n upon_o the_o earth_n luc._n 18._o 8._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v we_o know_v in_o part_n 1_o cor._n 13._o 12._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o dog_n therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v beware_v of_o evil_a work_n beware_v of_o concision_n philip._n 3._o v._n 2._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a illusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n 2._o thess._n 9_o 10._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o sound_a proof_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 52._o these_o be_v those_o clear_a text_n that_o m._n rogers_n bring_v forth_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o universal_a christian_a visible_a catholic_a church_n for_o that_o only_o we_o now_o treat_v of_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o have_v err_v determine_v matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o as_o you_o see_v here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n that_o be_v speak_v or_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o say_v universal_a catholic_a church_n but_o only_a caveat_n give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o beware_v of_o particular_a deceaver_n heretic_n pharisy_n herod_n &_o the_o like_a and_o consequent_o these_o place_n be_v so_o idle_o urge_v and_o so_o absurd_o apply_v by_o the_o author_n that_o i_o shall_v waste_v time_n in_o spend_v any_o more_o labour_n about_o peruse_v they_o any_o further_a only_o one_o of_o his_o place_n i_o will_v but_o touch_v in_o one_o word_n many_o say_v christ_n shall_v be_v deceive_v yea_o the_o very_a elect_a if_o it_o be_v possible_a out_o of_o which_o place_n for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o m._n roger_n proposition_n and_o infer_v the_o clean_a contrary_a assertion_n i_o reason_v thus_o and_o let_v tribunal_n syllogismi_fw-la umpire_n betwixt_o we_o both_o which_o be_v the_o better_a and_o fit_a consequence_n deduce_v out_o of_o this_o place_n if_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o elect_n shall_v be_v deceive_v though_o many_o be_v deceive_v than_o the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o elect_a as_o a_o part_n of_o she_o can_v be_v beceive_v sed_fw-la verum_fw-la primum_fw-la for_o truth_n itself_o have_v speak_v it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o those_o word_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la &_o secundum_fw-la the_o like_a consequence_n i_o will_v infer_v out_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o the_o place_n be_v so_o absurd_o and_o against_o all_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n urge_v that_o they_o be_v not_o long_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o 53._o the_o like_a miserable_a course_n or_o rather_o more_o pitiful_a if_o possible_o it_o may_v be_v do_v he_o take_v to_o prove_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o proposition_n which_o be_v that_o the_o say_v catholic_a visible_a church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n for_o that_o be_v the_o question_n and_o not_o his_o idle_a word_n of_o err_a in_o conversation_n and_o first_o he_o do_v alleag_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n iniquity_n shall_v be_v increase_v and_o the_o love_n of_o many_o shall_v wax_v can_v matth._n 24._o 12._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n second_o he_o cit_v that_o of_o s._n paul_n restore_v &c_n &c_n lest_o thou_o also_o be_v tempt_v gal._n 6._o 1._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n three_o i_o do_v not_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o i_o will_v but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o do_v i_o if_o i_o do_v that_o which_o i_o will_v not_o it_o be_v no_o more_o i_o that_o do_v it_o but_o the_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o rom._n 7._o 19_o 20._o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n four_o there_o be_v a_o fight_n even_o in_o the_o best_a man_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n rom._n 7._o 23_o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n belong_v to_o life_n and_o manner_n for_o this_o must_v be_v his_o conclusion_n out_o of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o place_n as_o his_o former_a of_o doctrine_n be_v out_o of_o the_o other_o and_o be_v not_o these_o goodly_a argument_n to_o prove_v his_o assertion_n his_o assertion_n as_o you_o have_v often_o hear_v be_v that_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n may_v err_v in_o determine_v matter_n belong_v to_o manner_n to_o wit_n in_o define_v and_o final_o determine_v this_o be_v good_a that_o be_v bad_a this_o be_v lawful_a that_o unlawful_a and_o the_o like_a and_o he_o come_v in_o with_o his_o misapply_v text_n to_o prove_v that_o particular_a man_n may_v have_v infirmity_n in_o they_o and_o fight_v of_o their_o passion_n or_o concupiscence_n do_v he_o not_o hit_v the_o nail_n on_o the_o head_n
book_n of_o sacerdot_n priesthood_n do_v very_o well_o declare_v 4._o and_o now_o to_o come_v unto_o these_o counsel_n and_o 327._o to_o speak_v particular_o of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o lie_v in_o order_n the_o council_n of_o nice_n be_v gather_v together_o somewhat_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o first_o great_a ecclesiastical_a assembly_n of_o all_o the_o world_n meet_v together_o by_o their_o bishop_n in_o this_o general_a council_n be_v for_o the_o censure_a and_o suppress_v of_o two_o capital_a and_o damnable_a heresy_n that_o then_o invade_v and_o infest_a the_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o first_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o this_o impugn_a nay_o flat_o deny_v the_o second_o person_n his_o identity_n of_o essence_n to_o wit_n the_o son_n his_o equality_n of_o substance_n and_o hodhead_n with_o the_o father_n grant_v he_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d like_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n which_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o those_o day_n 5._o the_o second_o heresy_n be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o quartadeciman_o concern_v the_o celebrate_n of_o easter-day_n of_o which_o heresy_n to_o speak_v any_o thing_n in_o particular_a at_o this_o time_n i_o intend_v not_o since_o it_o be_v not_o to_o my_o present_a purpose_n only_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n unto_o the_o author_n of_o the_o three_o conversion_n of_o england_n where_o this_o point_n be_v both_o substantial_o and_o punctual_o discuss_v the_o main_n point_n whereof_o i_o be_o to_o treat_v in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o intimate_v unto_o the_o reader_n how_o both_o these_o heresy_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o the_o heretical_a quartadeciman_o be_v determine_v censure_v and_o anathematise_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o sovereign_a and_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n i_o mean_v the_o first_o general_n council_n of_o nice_a which_o consist_v as_o s._n ambrose_n observe_v allude_v to_o the_o just_a number_n gratian._n of_o abraham_n his_o soldier_n of_o three_o hundred_o &_o eighteen_o bishop_n gather_v from_o all_o part_n of_o christendom_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o general_n council_n that_o can_v be_v assemble_v until_o that_o time_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o most_o bloody_a and_o cruel_a persecution_n that_o have_v continue_v for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o prcedentage_n 6._o and_o here_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o albeit_o that_o three_o other_o provincial_a national_a counsel_n be_v record_v to_o have_v be_v celebrate_v before_o this_o of_o nice_n and_o after_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 15._o to_o wit_n one_o at_o rome_n of_o 60._o bishop_n against_o novatus_fw-la under_o decius_n the_o cruel_a emperor_n and_o cornelius_n the_o martyr_a pope_n another_o at_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n under_o dioclesian_n the_o three_o at_o neocaesarea_n under_o constantine_n father_n and_o pope_n 252_o melchiade_n according_a to_o prateolus_n his_o account_n yet_o this_o council_n 308_o of_o nyce_n be_v the_o first_o great_a &_o glorious_a ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n which_o be_v public_o erect_v in_o the_o christian_a 311._o church_n for_o all_o nation_n to_o repair_v unto_o after_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n 7._o the_o second_o general_a council_n be_v that_o of_o constantinople_n somewhat_o more_o than_o fifty_o year_n after_o in_o the_o year_n of_o 383._o our_o lord_n 383._o and_o it_o consist_v of_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o bishop_n gather_v together_o against_o macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o open_o deny_v and_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o which_o damnable_a heresy_n of_o he_o both_o he_o and_o all_o that_o partake_v with_o his_o heretical_a faction_n be_v condemn_v censure_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v over_o to_o satan_n for_o that_o they_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o three_o sacred_a person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o this_o second_o great_a and_o general_a council_n be_v hold_v under_o gratian_n and_o theodosius_n emperor_n and_o under_o damasus_n then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 8._o the_o three_o general_n council_n be_v that_o which_o be_v 434._o assemble_v at_o ephesus_n almost_o other_o fifty_o year_n after_o that_o again_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n incarnation_n 434._o this_o council_n consist_v of_o two_o hundred_o bishop_n gather_v against_a another_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n name_v nestorius_n but_o a_o archhereticke_n and_o it_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o pope_n celestinus_fw-la this_o nestorius_n as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o his_o golden_a tract_n against_o heresy_n and_o 17._o chapter_n describe_v his_o heresy_n whilst_o he_o make_v show_v of_o distinguish_v two_o nature_n in_o christ_n he_o sudden_o bring_v in_o two_o person_n and_o by_o a_o execrable_a impiety_n thereby_o make_v two_o christ_n the_o one_o god_n the_o other_o man_n the_o one_o beget_v of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o other_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n his_o mother_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v further_o aver_v that_o holy_a mary_n be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o mother_n of_o god_n but_o the_o mother_n of_o christ_n because_o forsooth_o that_o christ_n which_o be_v god_n be_v not_o bear_v of_o she_o but_o the_o christ_n which_o be_v man_n hitherto_o my_o author_n and_o for_o this_o damnable_a heresy_n be_v nestorius_n condemn_v by_o this_o three_o council_n &_o worthy_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n howbeit_o i_o must_v confess_v that_o i_o can_v see_v how_o calvin_n &_o beza_n upon_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n and_o hypostatical_a union_n with_o diverse_a other_o protestant_n follow_v they_o 24._o can_v possible_o avoid_v this_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n but_o that_o nestorianisme_n must_v follow_v as_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n and_o union_n 9_o the_o four_o general_a council_n be_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o this_o be_v some_o twenty_o year_n and_o upwardes_o after_o the_o after_o foresay_a counsel_n of_o ephesus_n in_o which_o council_n there_o be_v assemble_v six_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o bishop_n archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n this_o great_a assembly_n be_v gather_v against_o on_o eutiches_n a_o archimandrite_n or_o abbot_n of_o constantinople_n in_o like_a manner_n who_o so_o confound_v the_o nature_n in_o christ_n that_o he_o absolute_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a nature_n in_o he_o for_o which_o monstrous_a opinion_n of_o he_o differ_v from_o the_o canon_n of_o catholic_n faith_n he_o be_v condemn_v together_o with_o his_o fautor_n &_o partner_n of_o his_o heretical_a faction_n i_o mean_v dioscorus_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n as_o be_v nestorius_n another_o archbishop_n before_o he_o for_o hold_v two_o person_n in_o christ._n and_o this_o famous_a and_o through_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n renown_a council_n be_v asseble_v and_o hold_v under_o martian_a that_o then_o sway_v the_o empire_n and_o s._n leo_n the_o first_o than_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostlicall_a sea_n of_o rome_n 10._o and_o now_o to_o make_v use_n in_o general_a of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v concern_v the_o four_o counsel_n by_o some_o particular_a application_n and_o illation_n the_o inference_n must_v needs_o be_v this_o that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v indeed_o admit_v and_o reverence_v these_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v his_o majesty_n be_v of_o opinion_n it_o do_v and_o their_o act_n of_o parliament_n confirm_v the_o same_o then_o do_v it_o follow_v by_o necessary_a and_o inevitable_a consequence_n though_o the_o conclusion_n overthrow_v a_o main_n ground_n of_o protestanticall_a religion_n that_o they_o must_v needs_o will_v they_o will_v they_o grant_v the_o catholic_a church_n not_o only_o to_o have_v be_v visible_a at_o this_o time_n but_o also_o to_o have_v be_v in_o great_a splendour_n and_o magnificence_n otherwise_o how_o can_v it_o possible_o be_v that_o fix_v hundred_o and_o thirty_o bishop_n can_v assemble_v and_o meet_v so_o ready_o together_o and_o all_o these_o for_o the_o most_o part_n out_o of_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o christendom_n only_o to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o west_n 11._o furthermore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o english_a church_n in_o admit_v these_o counsel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o great_a consistory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n do_v thereby_o acknowledge_v and_o condescend_v unto_o that_o this_o external_a visible_a church_n consist_v of_o good_a and_o bad_a be_v christ_n true_a church_n endue_v with_o all_o the_o privilege_n above_o mention_v of_o
dutiful_a and_o respective_a consideration_n upon_o four_o several_a head_n of_o proof_n and_o trial_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n propose_v by_o the_o high_a and_o mighty_a prince_n james_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o late_a book_n of_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n for_o clear_v his_o royal_a person_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n by_o a_o late_a minister_n and_o preacher_n in_o england_n august_n lib._n contrae_fw-la judaeos_fw-la pagan_a &_o arian_n cap._n 20._o you_o must_v know_v dear_a brethren_n that_o true_a faith_n sincere_a peace_n &_o perpetual_a salvation_n be_v only_o by_o the_o catholic_a faith_n for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o a_o corner_n but_o every_o where_o all_o if_o any_o man_n depart_v from_o it_o and_o deliver_v himself_o up_o to_o the_o error_n of_o heretic_n he_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v as_o a_o fugitive_n bondman_n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m._n dc_o ix_o the_o four_o head_n of_o just_a trial_n mention_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n as_o touch_v his_o own_o person_n 1._o the_o reverence_v and_o believe_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o so_o also_o the_o not_o canonical_a 2._o the_o admit_v of_o the_o first_o three_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n &_o of_o s._n athanasius_n 3._o the_o acknowledge_v &_o accept_v the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n of_o christendom_n to_o wit_n of_o nice_a of_o constantinople_n of_o ephesus_n &_o of_o chalcedon_n 4._o the_o credit_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n either_o joint_o or_o several_o in_o point_n of_o modern_a controversy_n every_o head_n be_v handle_v by_o diverse_a consideration_n as_o by_o the_o sequent_a catalogue_n of_o chapter_n will_v appear_v the_o general_n content_v of_o this_o book_n the_o epistle_n to_o his_o majesty_n declare_v the_o motive_n which_o the_o author_n have_v to_o write_v this_o treatise_n the_o first_o chapter_n contain_v a_o entrance_n into_o this_o treatise_n or_o trial_n how_o much_o it_o import_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o no_o heretic_n and_o with_o how_o great_a reason_n his_o majesty_n endeavour_v to_o clear_v himself_o and_o his_o royal_a person_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n five_o consideration_n 1_o about_o the_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o agree_v in_o one_o 2_o of_o the_o dreadful_a misery_n of_o be_v a_o heretic_n 3_o how_o a_o man_n may_v certain_o and_o without_o error_n discern_v what_o be_v catholic_a and_o what_o be_v heretical_a 4_o how_o out_o of_o the_o premise_n every_o man_n may_v judge_v in_o what_o state_n he_o stand_v for_o be_v heretic_n or_o catholic_a 5_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o this_o whole_a chapter_n to_o his_o majesty_n the_o second_o chapter_n that_o treat_v the_o first_o head_n touch_v by_o his_o majesty_n for_o trial_n of_o a_o christian_a catholic_a which_o be_v the_o believe_a of_o holy_a scripture_n four_o consideration_n 1_o the_o believe_v of_o scripture_n not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o catholic_n 2_o that_o scripture_n be_v not_o write_v for_o many_o year_n after_o the_o church_n begin_v 3_o how_o to_o know_v what_o be_v true_o scripture_n 4_o how_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v try_v the_o three_o chapter_n concern_v the_o second_o point_n or_o general_a head_n profess_v by_o his_o majesty_n concern_v his_o believe_v of_o the_o three_o creed_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n three_o consideration_n 1_o how_o the_o first_o three_o creed_n and_o why_o they_o be_v ordain_v and_o how_o great_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reverence_v 2_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n believe_v not_o whole_o &_o entire_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o three_o creed_n 3_o in_o what_o particular_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n english_a protestant_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o us._n the_o four_o chapter_n concern_v the_o approbation_n &_o allowance_n of_o the_o first_o sour_a general_a counsel_n which_o be_v the_o three_o general_a head_n of_o trial_n offer_v &_o propose_v by_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n of_o england_n three_o consideration_n 1_o why_o and_o how_o these_o four_o first_o counsel_n be_v gather_v and_o how_o thereby_o it_o be_v convince_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v 2_o why_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v remedy_v their_o division_n by_o any_o general_n or_o national_n council_n 3_o particular_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o these_o first_o four_o general_n counsel_n and_o the_o protestant_n of_o our_o time_n for_o doctrine_n &_o manner_n the_o five_o chapter_n concern_v the_o admittance_n &_o acceptance_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o four_o &_o last_o head_n of_o trial_n offer_v &_o allege_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n three_o consideration_n 1_o the_o different_a esteem_n that_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n do_v make_v of_o ancient_a father_n when_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o 2_o how_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n do_v esteem_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o particular_a father_n 3_o that_o the_o father_n of_o every_o age_n for_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n do_v make_v for_o catholic_n &_o against_o protestant_n in_o matter_n now_o in_o controversy_n the_o six_o chapter_n contain_v a_o brief_a contemplation_n of_o what_o hitherto_o have_v be_v say_v with_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o the_o high_a and_o pvissant_a prince_n my_o dread_a lord_n and_o sovereign_a james_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n &_o ireland_n king_n etc._n etc._n after_o i_o have_v bend_v myself_o unto_o a_o serious_a survey_v and_o diligent_a perusal_n of_o your_o majesty_n new_a book_n bear_v the_o inscription_n of_o a_o preface_n or_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n diverse_a be_v the_o apprehension_n and_o impression_n it_o make_v in_o the_o different_a faculty_n of_o my_o soul_n revolve_v therefore_o and_o reflect_v upon_o the_o premise_n by_o a_o second_o review_v i_o resolve_v and_o in_o fine_a conclude_v be_v now_o as_o it_o be_v wonderful_o affect_v partly_o with_o solace_n partly_o with_o solicitude_n 2._o my_o solace_n be_v to_o consider_v yea_o sensible_o as_o it_o be_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o soul_n in_o the_o impartial_a glass_n of_o my_o recollectedst_a understanding_n and_o most_o retire_v judgement_n to_o behold_v so_o many_o rare_a princely_a talent_n of_o nature_n literature_n and_o other_o high_o esteem_v part_n in_o your_o majesty_n which_o as_o they_o be_v seldom_o find_v in_o such_o potent_a prince_n so_o reside_v habitual_o in_o your_o royal_a breast_n as_o in_o their_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a subject_n they_o can_v but_o minister_v just_a matter_n of_o marvellous_a joy_n content_n and_o comfort_n unto_o all_o your_o liege_n people_n your_o loyal_a and_o love_a subject_n especial_o since_o they_o be_v accompany_v and_o attend_v yea_o adorn_v nay_o beautify_v with_o the_o irradiant_a lustre_n of_o that_o burn_a fire_n of_o zeal_n i_o mean_v a_o extraordinary_a fervour_n in_o matter_n of_o your_o religion_n now_o if_o these_o so_o rare_a part_n of_o nature_n literature_n and_o zeal_n wherewith_o your_o noble_a person_n be_v habitual_o invest_v shall_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o singer_n of_o god_n his_o holy_a spirit_n &_o the_o high_a hand_n of_o heaven_n unto_o the_o sole-sacred_n and_o soule-saving_a knowledge_n of_o catholic_a religion_n which_o i_o very_o hope_v in_o time_n to_o see_v and_o shall_v incessant_o pray_v for_o they_o will_v exceed_o advance_v his_o glory_n and_o gain_v unto_o your_o majesty_n a_o immarcessible_a &_o never-fading_a crown_n of_o eternity_n 3._o my_o spirit_n also_o rejoice_v within_o i_o my_o hart_n exult_v for_o joy_n &_o my_o perplex_a thought_n retire_v &_o repose_v themselves_o in_o hope_n when_o i_o take_v but_o a_o just_a view_n of_o that_o commendable_a careful_a diligence_n that_o pious_a and_o religious_a industry_n use_v by_o your_o majesty_n in_o vindieat_v your_o noble_a person_n from_o the_o least_o imputation_n of_o herefy_v and_o in_o remove_v the_o very_a suspicion_n of_o such_o a_o contagious_a and_o soul_n quess_v leprosy_n since_o that_o this_o loud-crying_a sin_n loud-crying_a in_o the_o ear_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o great_a crime_n that_o can_v be_v commit_v against_o god_n or_o his_o church_n separate_v betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n grace_n and_o the_o soul_n dissolve_v the_o mysterial_a 2._o union_n and_o sacramental_a communion_n betwixt_o the_o head_n &_o the_o member_n christ_n &_o his_o spouse_n reject_v god_n for_o father_n deny_v the_o church_n for_o mother_n take_v away_o the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o christian_a as_o ancient_a tertullian_n speak_v deprive_v our_o expectation_n of_o all_o hope_n and_o
salvation_n as_o s._n augustine_n that_o great_a pillar_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n note_v a_o sin_n the_o soul_n guilt_n ecclesiae_fw-la whereof_o nec_fw-la sanguine_fw-la abluitur_fw-la nec_fw-la passione_n purgatur_fw-la to_o close_v up_o the_o period_n with_o that_o renown_a martyr_n s._n cyprian_n his_o word_n 4._o the_o last_o but_o not_o the_o least_o nay_o the_o great_a cause_n of_o my_o comfort_n be_v when_o i_o real_o apprehend_v the_o candour_n serenity_n humility_n and_o sincerity_n of_o your_o noble_a hart_n in_o submit_v yourself_o by_o remit_v the_o trial_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o foresay_a imputation_n and_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n unto_o the_o sacred_a canon_n of_o holy_a writ_n common_a creed_n the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n and_o the_o bless_a father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n to_o all_o which_o upon_o a_o assure_a i_o may_v rather_o say_v a_o suppose_a innocency_n &_o integrity_n of_o your_o cause_n you_o appeal_v for_o the_o final_a umpiring_a and_o determine_v of_o any_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o catholic_n and_o your_o majesty_n which_o impartial_a and_o substantial_a ground_n as_o they_o be_v very_o prudent_o religious_o and_o with_o great_a maturity_n of_o judgement_n propose_v by_o your_o majesty_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o soundness_n of_o your_o judicious_a apprehension_n so_o if_o they_o shall_v stand_v inviolable_a and_o irrevocable_a like_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n &_o persian_n which_o can_v not_o be_v alter_v back_v by_o the_o word_n &_o authority_n of_o so_o potent_a a_o prince_n as_o your_o majesty_n be_v which_o may_v not_o be_v revoke_v for_o the_o word_n be_v go_v forth_o from_o the_o king_n you_o shall_v not_o only_o avert_v and_o avoid_v all_o sinister_a imputation_n and_o suspicion_n whatsoever_o from_o your_o royal_a person_n but_o withal_o you_o 17._o shall_v give_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n by_o public_a declaration_n of_o your_o majesty_n gracious_a disposition_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o if_o ought_v have_v be_v exorbitant_a extravagant_a or_o irregular_a in_o matter_n of_o your_o belief_n it_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v ascrybed_n to_o your_o violent_a education_n than_o anyway_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o your_o own_o voluntary_a obduration_n these_o thing_n be_v of_o wonderful_a comfort_n &_o exceed_a solace_n unto_o i_o 5._o but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o sweet_a repose_n whilst_o my_o weary_a and_o perplex_a thought_n seem_v to_o refresh_v themselves_o with_o some_o kind_n of_o promise_a hope_n upon_o the_o foresaid_a premise_n behold_v diverse_a other_o point_n of_o great_a anxiety_n &_o solicitude_n interpose_v themselves_o nay_o sudden_o interrupt_v my_o former_a solace_n i_o mean_v not_o general_o such_o point_n of_o your_o majesty_n book_n as_o may_v concern_v other_o christian_a prince_n people_n and_o state_n how_o these_o thing_n will_v be_v take_v among_o they_o for_o in_o this_o behalf_n i_o may_v not_o presume_v to_o prejudice_n your_o majesties_n grave_a wisdom_n and_o i_o can_v not_o but_o imagine_v but_o that_o your_o majesty_n out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o your_o own_o provident_a judgement_n have_v due_o and_o prudent_o preponderate_v all_o such_o probable_a ensue_a sequele_n and_o take_v far_o better_a counsel_n than_o i_o can_v be_v but_o such_o as_o particular_o respect_v and_o by_o necessary_a deduction_n of_o a_o certain_a inevitable_a consequence_n reflect_v proper_o upon_o myself_o for_o whereas_o i_o have_v with_o the_o great_a deliberation_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o imagine_v ground_v upon_o my_o own_o peculiar_a experience_n of_o many_o year_n travail_v in_o the_o sacred_a volume_n of_o orthodox_n antiquity_n make_v before_o a_o firm_a irrevokable_a resolution_n to_o abandon_v the_o protestant_a religion_n upon_o invincible_a argument_n of_o great_a solidity_n and_o notorious_a discovery_n of_o execrable_a blasphemy_n palpable_a and_o detestable_a heresy_n against_o god_n his_o christ_n his_o church_n his_o saint_n build_v my_o foundation_n upon_o the_o main_n rock_n of_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n canonical_a scripture_n true_o sense_v by_o they_o creed_n and_o counsel_n digest_v collect_v establish_v by_o they_o i_o now_o descry_v that_o your_o majesty_n intend_v to_o ground_v the_o clean_a contrary_a plea_n upon_o the_o same_o head_n for_o vindication_n of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n from_o the_o guilty_a crime_n of_o heresy_n the_o very_a intimation_n whereof_o inforce_v i_o i_o confess_v before_o the_o all-seeing_a judge_n and_o unto_o your_o sovereign_a majesty_n my_o supreme_a terrene_a lord_n next_o under_o he_o to_o look_v about_o i_o and_o to_o enter_v into_o a_o second_o and_o more_o serious_a consideration_n and_o meditation_n of_o the_o foresay_a head_n again_o lest_o i_o may_v happy_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a moment_n and_o weighty_a consequence_n in_o this_o world_n have_v run_v awry_o to_o the_o everlasting_a wrack_n and_o ruin_n of_o my_o soul_n 6._o now_o for_o aught_o that_o may_v concern_v your_o majesty_n royal_a person_n touch_v the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n let_v that_o loud-crying_a sin_n of_o open_a rebellion_n against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o heaven_n rather_o light_v upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n his_o christ_n his_o church_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o my_o sovereign_n then_o upon_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n who_o the_o god_n of_o angel_n make_v as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n to_o discern_v betwixt_o heretical_a novelty_n and_o catholic_a antiquity_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o find_v no_o difficulty_n nay_o i_o do_v with_o all_o alacrity_n and_o sincerity_n of_o soul_n admit_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o heretic_n and_o he_o that_o give_v credit_n unto_o heretic_n which_o s._n augustine_n admit_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o friend_n honoratus_n seduce_v by_o the_o donatist_n as_o your_o majesty_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v mislead_v by_o protestant_n it_o be_v in_o that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o his_o de_fw-la utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la write_v to_o his_o say_a friend_n si_fw-mi mihi_fw-la honorate_v unum_fw-la atque_fw-la idem_fw-la videretur_fw-la esse_fw-la haereticus_fw-la &_o credens_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la homo_fw-la tam_fw-la lingua_fw-la quam_fw-la stylo_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la causa_fw-la conquiescendum_fw-la esse_fw-la arbitrarer_fw-la etc._n etc._n cum_fw-la haec_fw-la ergo_fw-la ita_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la putavi_fw-la apud_fw-la te_fw-la silendum_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o i_o be_v persuade_v o_o honoratus_n that_o a_o heretic_n and_o the_o man_n who_o do_v believe_v heretic_n be_v all_o one_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n i_o shall_v suppose_v that_o i_o may_v spare_v both_o tongue_n and_o pen_n in_o this_o point_n but_o now_o since_o there_o be_v no_o small_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o two_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n in_o my_o judgement_n who_o for_o some_o temporal_a commodity_n and_o especial_o for_o renown_n and_o sovereignty_n either_o bring_v forth_o false_a and_o new_a opinion_n of_o himself_o or_o else_o adher_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o other_o but_o he_o that_o give_v credulity_n to_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v delude_v with_o a_o certain_a imagination_n of_o verity_n and_o piety_n wherefore_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o i_o have_v think_v good_a not_o to_o be_v silent_a or_o to_o hold_v my_o peace_n with_o you_o what_o my_o judgement_n be_v concern_v the_o find_v out_o and_o retain_v of_o truth_n 7._o we_o then_o that_o be_v your_o majesties_n catholic_a subject_n dutiful_a in_o mind_n though_o different_a in_o judgement_n do_v out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o our_o most_o loyal_a affection_n and_o to_o mitigate_v matter_n what_o may_v be_v until_o almighty_a god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n shall_v vouchsafe_v to_o put_v further_a remedy_n in_o your_o understanding_n hart_n by_o a_o more_o clear_a reveal_n of_o his_o truth_n most_o cheerful_o and_o charitable_o fasten_v upon_o that_o pious_a religious_a &_o true_a distinction_n of_o s._n augustine_n not_o ascribe_v that_o hateful_a name_n of_o heretic_n unto_o your_o majesty_n howsoever_o you_o seem_v for_o the_o present_a to_o adhere_v and_o patronize_v such_o opinion_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o we_o upon_o contrary_a ground_n of_o catholic_a divinity_n do_v hold_v to_o be_v heresy_n but_o rather_o we_o esteem_v your_o majesty_n for_o a_o prince_n that_o from_o your_o nativity_n and_o tender_a infancy_n after_o the_o unfortunate_a loss_n of_o your_o thrice_o noble_a catholic_a mother_n have_v be_v misguide_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o such_o as_o have_v your_o noble_a person_n in_o their_o government_n who_o you_o have_v believe_v and_o consequent_o have_v be_v deceive_v imaginatione_fw-la quadam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o pietatis_fw-la illusus_fw-la to_o end_v the_o sentence_n with_o s._n augustine_n his_o word_n 8._o and_o here_o in_o all_o dutiful_a submission_n as_o a_o true_a english-harted_n man_n and_o loyal_a subject_n to_o
high_a ever_o with_o his_o eternal_a protection_n to_o preserve_v your_o majesty_n to_o his_o great_a glory_n and_o the_o true_a comfort_n of_o your_o loyal_a subject_n so_o be_v it_o amen_n the_o first_o chapter_n contain_v a_o entrance_n into_o this_o treatise_n or_o trial_n how_o much_o it_o import_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o no_o heretic_n and_o with_o how_o great_a reason_n his_o majesty_n endeavour_v to_o clear_v himself_o and_o his_o royal_a person_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n if_o this_o short_a cut_n of_o our_o transitory_a pilgrimage_n here_o in_o this_o vale_n of_o misery_n be_v but_o a_o moment_n whereupon_o eternity_n of_o salvation_n or_o damnation_n do_v necessary_o resurrectione_n depend_v according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n leo_n the_o first_o ex_fw-la qualitate_fw-la temporalium_fw-la actionum_fw-la differentiae_fw-la retributionum_fw-la pendeant_fw-la aeternarum_fw-la from_o the_o quality_n of_o temporal_a action_n the_o diversity_n of_o eternal_a retribution_n do_v depend_v if_o god_n secret_a judgement_n towards_o he_o non_fw-la in_o compede_fw-la aut_fw-la in_o pileo_fw-la vertitur_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o aeternitate_fw-la aut_fw-la poenae_fw-la aut_fw-la salutis_fw-la as_o ancient_a tertullian_n avouch_v that_o be_v if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o matter_n of_o bondage_n or_o 4._o liberty_n manu-mission_n or_o captivity_n that_o come_v in_o question_n to_o be_v discuss_v before_o the_o heavenly_a tribunal_n but_o endless_a pain_n or_o interminable_a glory_n if_o this_o never-dying_a life_n or_o everliving_a death_n be_v either_o award_v or_o inflict_v achieve_v or_o incur_v according_a to_o man_n free_a choice_n of_o faith_n or_o infidelity_n catholic_a religion_n or_o heresy_n make_v here_o in_o the_o church_n or_o out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o every_o man_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a or_o malignant_a then_o singular_a be_v the_o importance_n and_o absolute_a necessary_a the_o decison_n and_o knowledge_n of_o this_o one_o main_n question_n purposely_o move_v to_o discern_v who_o be_v the_o catholic_a &_o who_o be_v the_o heretic_n since_o the_o premise_a eternity_n of_o weal_n or_o woe_n bliss_n or_o bale_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o one_o and_o threaten_v to_o the_o other_o 2._o the_o very_a consideration_n of_o these_o two_o weighty_a precedent_n circumstance_n of_o eternal_a glory_n or_o endless_a pain_n wrought_v such_o a_o impression_n in_o the_o hart_n of_o his_o royal_a majesty_n of_o england_n yea_o such_o care_n and_o such_o fear_n and_o such_o zeal_n of_o clear_v himself_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o in_o my_o judgement_n he_o think_v that_o the_o weighty_a counsel_n of_o tertullian_n worthy_a of_o eternal_a memory_n 11_o of_o every_o one_o that_o have_v a_o soul_n to_o save_v ought_v to_o be_v embrace_v and_o follow_v of_o he_o to_o wit_n cui_fw-la severitati_fw-la declinandae_fw-la patientia_fw-la vel_fw-la liberalitati_fw-la invitandae_fw-la tanta_fw-la obsequij_fw-la diligentia_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la quanta_fw-la sunt_fw-la ipsa_fw-la quae_fw-la aut_fw-la severitas_fw-la comminatur_fw-la aut_fw-la liberalitas_fw-la pollicetur_fw-la it_o be_v in_o his_o place_n before_o cite_v infer_v upon_o those_o premise_n which_o go_v before_o that_o be_v for_o avoid_v of_o which_o severity_n and_o invite_v of_o which_o liberality_n our_o obedience_n must_v use_v such_o diligence_n as_o the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v of_o moment_n which_o either_o the_o severity_n do_v treaten_v or_o the_o liberality_n do_v promise_v 3._o hence_o proceed_v that_o worthy_a industry_n use_v by_o his_o majesty_n in_o clear_v himself_o from_o that_o foul_a crime_n of_o heresy_n and_o hence_o come_v that_o voluntary_a confession_n concern_v his_o majesty_n religion_n enforce_v he_o to_o break_v forth_o into_o that_o earnest_n and_o serious_a protestation_n viz._n i_o will_v never_o be_v ashamed_a to_o render_v a_o account_n of_o my_o profession_n and_o of_o that_o hope_n 15_o that_o be_v in_o i_o as_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v i_o be_o such_o a_o catholic_a christian_a as_o believe_v the_o three_o creed_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o do_v ensue_v the_o protestation_n four_o head_n before_o lay_v down_o a_o sentence_n contain_v in_o it_o a_o confession_n worthy_a to_o be_v stamp_v in_o character_n of_o gold_n and_o to_o be_v write_v with_o a_o pen_n of_o iron_n and_o with_o the_o point_n of_o a_o diamond_n that_o it_o may_v be_v everlasting_o remember_v and_o never_o bury_v in_o ash_n of_o oblivion_n and_o if_o word_n 24._o can_v be_v witness_n of_o the_o mind_n the_o hart_n must_v needs_o be_v well_o meaning_n and_o sincere_a whence_o such_o word_n proceed_v for_o i_o will_v never_o imagine_v that_o of_o his_o majesty_n which_o be_v to_o common_a now_o adays_o unum_fw-la in_o ore_fw-la promptum_fw-la aliud_fw-la in_o pectore_fw-la clausum_fw-la sallust_n where_o word_n pass_v as_o coin_a to_o serve_v the_o present_a time_n and_o as_o they_o shall_v make_v for_o the_o most_o advantage_n of_o the_o speaker_n oh_o what_o great_a pity_n be_v it_o that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v be_v mislead_v in_o matter_n of_o that_o importance_n as_o immediate_o concern_v his_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o the_o soul_n welfare_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n especial_o since_o he_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o religion_n which_o under_o his_o authority_n be_v there_o mantayn_v to_o render_v a_o account_n to_o god_n not_o only_o for_o himself_o in_o particular_a but_o for_o all_o his_o subject_n in_o general_n such_o be_v the_o burden_n of_o all_o they_o who_o by_o their_o place_n and_o dignity_n have_v high_a authority_n over_o other_o 4._o now_o albeit_o his_o majesty_n do_v upon_o some_o occasion_n or_o other_o defer_v the_o handle_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o credit_n due_a unto_o they_o unto_o the_o four_o and_o last_o place_n yet_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v most_o convenient_a to_o treat_v thereof_o in_o the_o first_o of_o this_o my_o discourse_n according_a to_o the_o dignity_n and_o preeminency_n of_o the_o subject_n itself_o but_o yet_o before_o i_o enter_v into_o the_o list_n of_o this_o argument_n i_o have_v esteem_v it_o expedient_a for_o sundry_a cause_n to_o premise_v this_o other_o chapter_n concern_v the_o name_n and_o attribute_n nature_n and_o circumstance_n property_n and_o difference_n prerogative_n and_o damage_n of_o be_v a_o catholic_n or_o heretic_n as_o also_o to_o lay_v down_o some_o way_n how_o to_o try_v the_o same_o to_o which_o purpose_n i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o address_v certain_a several_a consideration_n which_o do_v ensue_v in_o every_o chapter_n the_o first_o consideration_n concern_v the_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n these_o be_v great_a word_n they_o do_v admit_v a_o twofold_a agree_v signification_n the_o first_o be_v general_a and_o natural_a the_o second_o more_o special_a and_o ecclesiastical_a 6._o touch_v the_o general_a &_o natural_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n they_o import_v as_o much_o as_o universal_a or_o whole_a or_o choice_n or_o chooser_n and_o howsoever_o upon_o the_o first_o view_n and_o superficial_a insight_n they_o appear_v not_o to_o be_v so_o great_o opposite_a and_o contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o but_o that_o in_o diverse_a respect_n they_o may_v agree_v and_o stand_v together_o for_o that_o both_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v whole_a or_o universal_a may_v be_v choose_v and_o that_o which_o be_v choose_v by_o election_n may_v in_o some_o sense_n be_v whole_a or_o universal_a yet_o in_o the_o special_a and_o ecclesiastical_a appropriation_n of_o these_o word_n invent_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o retain_v and_o bring_v into_o ecclesiastical_a use_n and_o canon_n by_o the_o christian_a church_n there_o be_v such_o a_o extreme_a opposition_n and_o irreconciliable_a hostility_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o contrary_a nature_n and_o effect_n as_o that_o nothing_o among_o christian_a man_n can_v be_v more_o opposite_a and_o contradictory_n no_o not_o light_n &_o darkness_n heaven_n and_o hell_n 14._o virtue_n and_o vice_n salvation_n and_o damnation_n god_n and_o beliall_n for_o as_o isaac_n and_o ishmael_n the_o son_n of_o the_o bondwoman_n religion_n and_o the_o heir_n of_o promise_n can_v not_o dwell_v together_o in_o one_o house_n as_o jacob_n and_o esau_n can_v not_o agree_v together_o in_o one_o womb_n but_o contend_v together_o whereupon_o rebecca_n complain_v and_o expostulate_v with_o god_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v even_o so_o why_o be_o i_o conceive_v in_o one_o word_n to_o shut_v up_o all_o in_o a_o word_n as_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n continual_o 22_o jar_n and_o be_v at_o difference_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n even_o so_o the_o catholic_a and_o the_o heretic_n as_o another_o isaac_n and_o ishmael_n as_o another_o esau_n and_o jacob_n as_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n they_o can_v never_o dwell_v together_o in_o god_n house_n they_o can_v never_o agree_v together_o in_o one_o womb_n the_o womb_n of_o the_o church_n one_o of_o they_o must_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o
use_v his_o own_o election_n sive_fw-la ad_fw-la prescript_n instituendas_fw-la sive_fw-la ad_fw-la suscipiendas_fw-la haereses_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o author_n of_o heresy_n or_o a_o follower_n as_o tertullian_n speak_v in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v and_o all_o this_o he_o do_v according_a to_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o fancy_n ascribe_v little_a or_o rather_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o thing_n that_o mislike_v his_o own_o judgement_n so_o that_o in_o conclusion_n these_o two_o man_n be_v most_o opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o 11._o the_o first_o clear_a knowledge_n that_o ever_o the_o church_n have_v of_o this_o peculiar_a and_o ecclesiastical_a appropriation_n of_o these_o two_o word_n catholic_a &_o heretic_n be_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n heretic_n inspirer_n of_o all_o truth_n as_o have_v be_v former_o note_v and_o to_o begin_v first_o with_o the_o last_o the_o very_a first_o intimation_n give_v of_o that_o odious_a and_o pestiferous_a appellation_n of_o heresy_n or_o heretic_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o namely_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinth_n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n that_o those_o who_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v manifest_v among_o you_o which_o manifestation_n tertull._n say_v be_v 9_o mean_v aswell_o of_o those_o tam_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o persecutionibꝰ_n steterint_fw-la quam_fw-la quiad_n haereses_fw-la exorbitaverint_fw-la who_o have_v remain_v constant_a in_o persecution_n as_o they_o who_o have_v not_o decline_v out_o of_o the_o right_a path_n to_o follow_v heresy_n so_o he_o second_o the_o same_o apostle_n in_o his_o 4._o epistle_n to_o titus_n write_v thus_o avoid_v a_o heretical_a man_n after_o one_o or_o two_o reprehension_n know_v that_o such_o a_o one_o be_v subvert_v and_o sin_v as_o damn_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a judgement_n id_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la infirmitate_fw-la ac_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la quam_fw-la spontanea_fw-la malitia_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr obstinata_fw-la industria_fw-la peccat_fw-la for_o so_o i_o 11._o may_v well_o expound_v it_o that_o be_v he_o sin_v not_o so_o much_o of_o infirmity_n and_o ignorance_n as_o he_o do_v of_o voluntary_a malice_n and_o obstinate_a industry_n or_o else_o eligit_fw-la sibi_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la damnatur_fw-la as_o tertullian_n give_v the_o sense_n his_o own_o election_n make_v good_a his_o own_o damnation_n and_o as_o s._n paul_n inveigh_v thus_o against_o heresy_n 6._o &_o heretic_n so_o do_v s._n peter_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v 2._o pet._n 2._o brand_a they_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d damnable_a heresy_n and_o the_o teacher_n of_o they_o for_o such_o as_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d swift_a damnation_n or_o as_o it_o be_v render_v in_o another_o place_n immediate_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibidem_fw-la and_o their_o damnation_n sleep_v not_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o terrible_a to_o forewarn_v we_o of_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n than_o this_o excellent_a therefore_o be_v the_o counsel_n 31_o of_o tertullian_n wish_v we_o to_o avoid_v a_o heretic_n post_fw-la unam_fw-la correptionem_fw-la non_fw-la post_fw-la disputationem_fw-la adeo_fw-la interdixit_fw-la disputationem_fw-la 16._o correptionem_fw-la designans_fw-la causam_fw-la haeretici_fw-la conveniendi_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la unam_fw-la scilicet_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la christianus_fw-la ne_fw-fr more_fw-mi christiani_n semel_fw-la &_o iterum_fw-la &_o sub_fw-la duobus_fw-la aut_fw-la tribus_fw-la testibus_fw-la castigandus_fw-la videretur_fw-la cum_fw-la ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la sit_fw-la castigandus_fw-la propter_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la disputandum_fw-la after_o one_o reprehension_n and_o not_o after_o a_o disputation_n for_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v therefore_o forbid_v disputation_n because_o the_o speak_n with_o a_o heretic_n shall_v be_v for_o his_o reprehension_n and_o this_o only_o once_o because_o he_o be_v no_o christian_a lest_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o christian_a he_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v chastise_v once_o and_o again_o and_o that_o by_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n when_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o be_v to_o be_v chastise_v because_o there_o be_v no_o disputation_n to_o be_v have_v with_o such_o a_o one_o 12._o and_o although_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v use_v two_o or_o three_o time_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o 14._o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n be_v call_v heresy_n and_o though_o s._n paul_n himself_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n most_o willing_o undergo_v the_o imputation_n where_o christian_a religion_n be_v brand_v with_o the_o term_n of_o sect_n or_o heresy_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o word_n take_v in_o such_o a_o heinous_a signification_n here_o in_o these_o place_n as_o in_o the_o other_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n before_o mention_v for_o that_o of_o no_o kind_n of_o sin_n or_o sinner_n do_v they_o ever_o pronounce_v so_o grievous_a a_o sentence_n as_o namely_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v flee_v from_o as_o subvert_v and_o damn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n that_o they_o bring_v in_o damnable_a heresy_n that_o they_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n and_o that_o their_o damnation_n sleep_v not_o which_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o pronounce_v nay_o they_o bold_o pronounce_v of_o a_o heretical_a man_n they_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n here_o be_v nothing_o but_o damnation_n and_o all_o to_o give_v we_o a_o terrible_a admonition_n to_o beware_v they_o and_o avoid_v they_o and_o thus_o much_o i_o think_v good_a to_o say_v of_o this_o dreadful_a name_n for_o stir_v up_o my_o former_a brethren_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o beware_v thereof_o but_o much_o more_o to_o decline_v the_o cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o the_o same_o 13._o as_o for_o the_o word_n catholic_n it_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o be_v first_o reveal_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o be_v all_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o common_a creed_n for_o be_v assemble_v together_o to_o compose_v a_o perfect_a platform_n of_o true_a and_o saving-beliefe_n and_o to_o keep_v out_o heresy_n while_o they_o disperse_v themselves_o abroad_o to_o sow_v the_o sacred_a seed_n of_o evangelicall_a verity_n they_o be_v at_o this_o time_n and_o for_o this_o purpose_n assemble_v and_o their_o tongue_n be_v the_o pen_n of_o a_o ready_a writer_n when_o they_o come_v unto_o that_o article_n which_o concern_v the_o church_n they_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o never-erring_a spirit_n lay_v down_o the_o form_n thus_o credo_fw-la in_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la sanctan_n ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n where_o they_o do_v not_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v they_o believe_v the_o holy_a christian_a church_n but_o they_o think_v the_o word_n catholic_a to_o be_v more_o eminent_a significant_a and_o effectual_a for_o the_o purpose_n neither_o can_v this_o be_v do_v without_o the_o singular_a care_n providence_n &_o wisdom_n of_o that_o all-seing_a spirit_n that_o undoubted_o inspire_v they_o etc._n &_o guide_v they_o for_o as_o tertull._n observe_v that_o s._n paul_n forseeing_a that_o heresy_n will_v afterwards_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o weed_n usual_o do_v among_o the_o pure_a and_o rank_a corn_n foretell_v and_o forewarn_v they_o to_o come_v yea_o point_v out_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o finger_n to_o some_o heresy_n particular_o even_o so_o the_o apostle_n foresee_v that_o all_o heresy_n be_v to_o shroud_v themselves_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a church_n assembly_n and_o congregation_n they_o think_v it_o most_o convenient_a for_o preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o verity_n to_o set_v this_o remarkable_a stamp_n of_o catholic_n upon_o the_o church_n for_o the_o more_o manifest_a convince_a and_o detect_v of_o all_o heresy_n which_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n be_v once_o set_v upon_o the_o sleeve_n of_o the_o church_n impossible_a it_o be_v that_o any_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v be_v or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v can_v ever_o fasten_v upon_o this_o title_n and_o since_o it_o be_v more_o than_o apparent_a that_o the_o genuine_a description_n of_o catholic_a require_v more_o particular_n and_o more_o easy_a to_o be_v discover_v then_o do_v the_o name_n of_o christian_a in_o general_a most_o pertinent_a if_o not_o necessary_a be_v the_o imposition_n of_o this_o name_n upon_o christ_n church_n for_o the_o better_a exclude_v and_o keep_v forth_o of_o all_o heretical_a and_o particular_a sectary_n whatsoever_o 14._o from_o these_o two_o fountain_n then_o of_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o common_a creed_n original_o flow_v the_o knowledge_n and_o use_n of_o these_o two_o word_n of_o catholic_n and_o heretic_n both_o of_o they_o come_v from_o heaven_n both_o be_v particular_o inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o breathe_v into_o the_o church_n for_o her_o better_a preservation_n as_o have_v be_v former_o note_v the_o very_a consideration_n whereof_o
aught_o effectual_o to_o move_v we_o to_o make_v great_a esteem_n of_o their_o knowledge_n to_o entertain_v they_o as_o we_o ought_v and_o that_o be_v high_o to_o reverence_v and_o sincere_o to_o affect_v the_o one_o since_o out_o of_o the_o confine_n of_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o salvation_n as_o also_o to_o detest_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o other_o as_o from_o a_o serpent_n yea_o as_o from_o satan_n that_o first_o seduce_v serpent_n since_o this_o bring_v with_o it_o assure_a damnation_n 15._o for_o these_o and_o the_o same_o cause_n the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o his_o catholic_n majesty_n as_o that_o he_o refer_v himself_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o their_o decision_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o these_o word_n and_o their_o mystery_n be_v reveal_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o in_o time_n they_o shall_v be_v bury_v in_o oblivion_n do_v present_o with_o their_o pen_n advance_v the_o most_o high_a commendation_n of_o the_o one_o as_o the_o only_a ordinary_a high_a way_n to_o everlasting_a salvation_n as_o also_o by_o many_o detestation_n and_o execration_n depress_v the_o other_o as_o the_o very_a path_n to_o eternal_a perdition_n 16._o among_o which_o worthy_n and_o famous_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ancient_a father_n pacianus_n so_o high_o commend_v by_o s._n hier._n for_o his_o holiness_n above_o 1200._o year_n ago_o write_v a_o learned_a epistle_n to_o one_o sempronianus_fw-la a_o novatian_a heretic_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o name_n catholic_a for_o that_o illust_n those_o heretic_n as_o we_o also_o of_o this_o day_n do_v make_v very_o little_a account_n of_o this_o name_n but_o the_o holy_a father_n describe_v at_o large_a how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o leave_v unto_o we_o this_o name_n or_o rather_o syr-name_n for_o distinguish_v all_o faithful_a christian_n from_o misbeliever_n his_o word_n be_v very_o effectual_a for_o this_o purpose_n ego_fw-la sortè_fw-la ingressus_fw-la populosam_fw-la urbem_fw-la hodie_fw-la say_v he_o cum_fw-la marcionitas_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o bechance_v enter_v this_o day_n into_o a_o populous_a city_n and_o find_v there_o some_o call_v marcionite_n some_o apollinarian_o some_o cataphrigian_o some_o novatian_n and_o other_o of_o like_a sect_n all_o call_n themselves_o christian_n i_o do_v not_o know_v by_o what_o syr-name_n i_o shall_v find_v cut_v the_o congregation_n of_o my_o people_n except_o by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n so_o he_o and_o then_o proceed_v further_o certè_fw-la non_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la mutuat●m_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la sempr._n tantae_fw-la saecula_fw-la non_fw-la cecidit_fw-la certain_o this_o name_n be_v never_o take_v or_o borrow_v of_o man_n that_o have_v not_o fall_v or_o decay_v for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o then_o he_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n and_o universal_a church_n &_o namely_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_n in_o particular_a for_o the_o use_n of_o that_o name_n against_o all_o heresy_n whatsoever_o conclude_v thus_o quaere_fw-la ab_fw-la haeretico_fw-la nomine_fw-la noster_fw-la populus_fw-la hac_fw-la appellatione_fw-la dividitur_fw-la cum_fw-la catholicus_n nuncupatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o our_o people_n be_v distinguish_v by_o this_o appellation_n from_o all_o heretical_a name_n when_o it_o be_v call_v catholic_a and_o yet_o further_o he_o say_v christianus_n mihi_fw-la nomen_fw-la est_fw-la catholicus_n verò_fw-la cogneman_n i_o illud_fw-la nuncupat_fw-la istud_fw-la ostendit_fw-la hoc_fw-la prober_fw-la illo_fw-la significor_n christian_n be_v my_o name_n but_o catholic_a be_v my_o syrname_n the_o first_o do_v name_v i_o only_o the_o second_o do_v point_v i_o out_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a i_o be_o fignify_v only_o but_o by_o the_o syrname_n of_o catholic_a i_o be_o try_v and_o examine_v whether_o i_o be_v a_o christion_n or_o no._n so_o he_o 17._o this_o be_v that_o high_a account_n and_o esteem_v wherein_o that_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n s._n pacianus_n hold_v the_o word_n catholic_a after_o that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v appropriate_v &_o assume_v this_o distinctive_a appellation_n set_v it_o as_o a_o most_o certain_a badge_n or_o cognisance_n upon_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a and_o upon_o the_o sleeve_n of_o every_o member_n of_o this_o church_n in_o particular_a and_o the_o reason_n reassume_v in_o the_o conclusion_n be_v in_o effect_n this_o appellatio_fw-la catholici_fw-la congregat_fw-la homogenia_fw-la diss●pat_fw-la heterogenia_fw-la that_o be_v in_o plain_a term_n this_o name_n catholic_a make_v a_o conjunction_n unite_n her_o own_o and_o it_o note_v a_o disjunction_n separate_v all_o sectary_n from_o her_o society_n and_o here_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n even_o the_o wisdom_n of_o almighty_a god_n 19_o discern_v betwixt_o the_o true_a mother_n and_o the_o false_a this_o be_v the_o true_a &_o natural_a mother_n of_o every_o child_n of_o the_o church_n she_o will_v admit_v no_o division_n of_o her_o child_n she_o will_v have_v all_o or_o none_o for_o catholic_a be_v her_o name_n but_o to_o leave_v s._n pacianus_n and_o to_o pass_v to_o other_o since_o that_o the_o scripture_n require_v that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o 13._o thing_n shall_v be_v establish_v where_o we_o may_v note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o or_o three_o ordinary_a witness_n may_v stint_v the_o strife_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n and_o tend_v to_o reconciliation_n in_o foro_fw-la saeculi_fw-la how_o much_o more_o then_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o extraordinary_a witness_n witness_v judge_n and_o judge_a witness_n great_a than_o all_o exception_n aught_o to_o compromise_n and_o final_o decide_v the_o question_n now_o in_o hand_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la in_fw-la foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 18._o these_o witness_n consent_v with_o pacianus_n in_o the_o premise_a point_n of_o catholic_a be_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o live_v either_o before_o or_o after_o he_o in_o the_o century_n of_o christian_a religion_n within_o the_o unity_n and_o bosom_n of_o their_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n as_o namely_o before_o he_o s._n cyprian_n who_o he_o express_o mention_v and_o before_o he_o again_o old_a tertullian_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n who_o s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n so_o high_o reverence_v and_o when_o he_o will_v read_v he_o he_o 26._o point_v he_o out_o thus_o dam_fw-la mihi_fw-la magistrum_fw-la and_o after_o these_o two_o s._n augustine_n who_o ascribe_v so_o much_o and_o that_o as_o he_o think_v worthy_o unto_o this_o name_n catholic_a as_o that_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v one_o special_a motive_n both_o to_o draw_v he_o to_o it_o and_o to_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n of_o his_o day_n neither_o do_v this_o great_a doctor_n bare_o affirm_v it_o upon_o his_o word_n and_o credit_n which_o have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o have_v believe_v the_o same_o but_o he_o yield_v a_o substantial_a reason_n thereof_o in_o the_o word_n follow_v quod_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la causa_fw-la inter_fw-la tam_fw-la varias_fw-la haereses_fw-la ista_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sola_fw-la obtinuit_fw-la which_o very_a name_n 4._o of_o catholic_a not_o without_o cause_n this_o only_a church_n have_v obtain_v among_o so_o many_o heresy_n as_o have_v spring_v up_o again_o the_o same_o father_n positive_o and_o bold_o affirm_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v so_o appropriate_a to_o this_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o creed_n give_v that_o name_n unto_o it_o as_o that_o no_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n whatsoever_o can_v once_o fasten_v upon_o the_o name_n themselves_o or_o procure_v the_o same_o to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o other_o and_o hereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o very_a possession_n of_o the_o name_n and_o common_a opinion_n of_o man_n be_v a_o sufficient_a convince_a proof_n against_o all_o adversary_n that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n indeed_o 19_o hitherto_o s._n augustine_n now_o if_o we_o descend_v low_a to_o succeed_v age_n of_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v unto_o those_o father_n that_o live_v after_o s._n augustine_n his_o time_n we_o shall_v find_v such_o harmony_n in_o unity_n such_o uniform_a consent_n in_o judgement_n touch_v the_o true_a explication_n of_o this_o name_n catholic_n as_o also_o the_o very_a right_a explication_n of_o that_o unto_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n of_o their_o day_n that_o we_o must_v hence_o necessary_o infer_v that_o one_o spirit_n breathe_v in_o all_o one_o &_o the_o same_o spirit_n direct_v all_o and_o here_o i_o may_v produce_v a_o whole_a cloud_n of_o witness_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o namely_o s._n damascen_n oecumenius_n theophilact_n for_o the_o greek_a 1._o p●lgentius_n s._n gregory_n the_o
that_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v the_o catholic_n but_o pursue_v they_o and_o arrest_v they_o of_o sacrilegious_a church-theft_n for_o steal_v this_o title_n they_o dare_v not_o stand_v to_o try_v the_o issue_n before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n but_o present_o as_o guilty_a they_o fly_v away_o renounce_v their_o steal_a title_n and_o so_o it_o return_v to_o the_o right_a owner_n and_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n that_o maugre_o their_o head_n they_o be_v enforce_v to_o this_o restitution_n when_o they_o be_v at_o such_o opposition_n among_o themselves_o as_o be_v former_o note_v which_o very_a opposition_n itself_o set_v all_o other_o argument_n of_o the_o catholic_n a_o part_n do_v evident_o show_v and_o demonstrative_o convince_v unto_o their_o face_n that_o they_o can_v be_v catholic_n indeed_o because_o catholicum_fw-la ubique_fw-la unum_fw-la as_o the_o foresay_a father_n pacianus_n note_v that_o be_v catholic_a in_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v eccles._n every_o where_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o for_o as_o christ_n seamelesse_a coat_n be_v whole_a entire_a and_o undevided_a it_o be_v s._n cyprian_n his_o comparison_n and_o it_o be_v well_o worthy_a our_o observation_n even_o so_o must_v the_o spouse_n and_o church_n of_o christ_n figure_v by_o this_o coat_n be_v whole_a entire_a undevided_a and_o one_o in_o itself_o and_o thereupon_o say_v s._n syprian_n possidere_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la indumentum_fw-la christi_fw-la qui_fw-la scindit_fw-la et_fw-la dividit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christi_fw-la he_o can_v eccles._n never_o possess_v the_o coat_n of_o christ_n who_o rent_v and_o tear_v the_o church_n of_o christ._n 24._o but_o alas_o catholic_a communion_n and_o catholic_a union_n can_v be_v find_v much_o less_o verify_v in_o and_o of_o protestant_a religion_n not_o only_o in_o those_o old_a imagine_a time_n &_o age_n of_o their_o suppose_a primitive_a church_n which_o they_o ridiculous_o and_o impudent_o contra_fw-la scientiam_fw-la contrae_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la do_v challenge_n unto_o themselves_o but_o neither_o in_o these_o very_a age_n wherein_o they_o have_v peep_v out_o of_o chymerian_a nay_o out_o of_o infernal_a darkness_n and_o be_v know_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n lutheran_n caluinist_n and_o the_o like_a i_o say_v not_o in_o these_o time_n can_v they_o show_v ubique_fw-la unum_fw-la among_o themselves_o in_o main_n and_o many_o article_n of_o christian_a belief_n and_o this_o i_o can_v partly_o speak_v upon_o my_o own_o experience_n have_v among_o they_o for_o many_o year_n during_o which_o time_n i_o can_v never_o yet_o god_n i_o take_v to_o witness_v as_o righteous_a judge_n find_v any_o two_o of_o they_o agree_v together_o in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o partly_o i_o can_v prove_v it_o by_o infinite_a book_n write_v by_o themselves_o wherein_o they_o fall_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n discover_v their_o own_o shame_n upon_o their_o own_o skirt_n ephraim_n against_o manasses_n &_o manasses_n against_o ephraim_n &_o both_o against_o judah_n that_o be_v lutheran_n against_o caluinist_n &_o caluinist_n against_o lutheran_n &_o yet_o both_o like_o simeon_n &_o levi_n fratres_n in_o malo_fw-la in_o the_o evil_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n they_o can_v join_v hand_n and_o conspire_v against_o catholic_n and_o catholic_n verity_n and_o this_o convince_a my_o understanding_n that_o protestant_n can_v not_o be_v catholic_n and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v to_o the_o other_o side_n where_o i_o find_v indeed_o ubtque_fw-la unum_fw-la every_o where_o one_o in_o all_o point_n of_o their_o belief_n throughout_o the_o world_n together_o with_o that_o universality_n antiquity_n consent_n and_o succession_n which_o the_o foresay_a vincentius_n lyrinensis_n that_o good_a old_a monk_n &_o professor_n of_o euangelical_n counsel_n of_o perfection_n that_o live_v in_o s._n augustine_n his_o time_n set_v down_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n in_o his_o time_n as_o the_o certain_a sign_n mark_n and_o token_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n indeed_o and_o this_o much_o shall_v suffice_v for_o this_o first_o consideration_n about_o the_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n let_v we_o pass_v unto_o the_o second_o the_o second_o consideration_n if_o the_o change_n of_o abraham_n his_o name_n from_o abram_n into_o heretic_n abraham_n be_v full_a of_o mystical_a consolation_n because_o it_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o for_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n genes_n 17_o 5._o if_o jacob_n his_o name_n be_v turn_v into_o israel_n be_v fraught_v with_o comfort_n and_o that_o for_o these_o two_o especial_a reason_n first_o because_o he_o have_v prevail_v with_o god_n &_o second_o because_o he_o shall_v prevail_v against_o man_n genes_n 32._o 28._o o_o then_o how_o comfortable_a and_o how_o amiable_a how_o full_a of_o solace_n &_o heavenly_a delight_n ought_v this_o glorious_a &_o through_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n renown_a name_n of_o catholic_a to_o be_v unto_o we_o since_o it_o confirm_v we_o nay_o assure_v and_o seal_v unto_o we_o all_o god_n promise_n make_v unto_o the_o church_n it_o be_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n comprehend_v all_o true_a believe_a christian_n within_o the_o lap_n and_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n it_o prevail_v with_o god_n procure_v his_o heavenly_a benediction_n and_o never_o depart_v without_o a_o blessing_n and_o it_o prevail_v against_o man_n distinguish_v betwixt_o wolf_n and_o sheep_n separate_v all_o false_a worshipper_n from_o the_o true_a believer_n 26._o and_o now_o as_o this_o name_n of_o catholic_n begin_n to_o be_v unto_o i_o most_o amiable_a and_o comfortable_a contain_v in_o it_o so_o many_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n and_o be_v so_o high_o repute_v esteem_v and_o commend_v by_o all_o sacred_a antiquity_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n day_n downward_o unto_o our_o time_n though_o sempronianus_fw-la the_o novatian_a heretic_n object_v to_o the_o forename_a father_n pacianus_n as_o the_o heretic_n do_v to_o we_o in_o these_o day_n that_o sub_fw-la apostois_n nemo_fw-la catholicus_n vocabatur_fw-la no_o man_n be_v call_v catholic_a under_o the_o apostle_n so_o on_o the_o 1._o other_o side_n compare_v contrary_n together_o quae_fw-la iuxta_fw-la seinuicem_fw-la posita_fw-la magis_fw-la illucescunt_fw-la which_o be_v opposite_a be_v the_o clear_a reveal_v i_o consider_v with_o all_o possible_a attention_n that_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n be_v most_o dreadful_a above_o all_o other_o name_n upon_o the_o earth_n as_o before_o i_o have_v note_v at_o large_a and_o therefore_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o cham_n accurse_v of_o his_o father_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v there_o be_v genes_n 9_o 25._o then_o the_o heretic_n be_v this_o cham_n accurse_v of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o anathematise_v of_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n this_o be_v benoni_n that_o son_n of_o the_o mother_n sorrow_n as_o rachael_n pronounce_v of_o benjamin_n the_o birth_n of_o this_o son_n will_v be_v the_o death_n of_o his_o mother_n he_o 18._o come_v from_o her_o womb_n but_o he_o will_v not_o abide_v in_o her_o bosom_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n prodierunt_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la 1●_n sed_fw-la non_fw-la erant_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la fuissent_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la permansissent_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la manifesti_fw-la sint_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la they_o go_v forth_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v remain_v with_o us._n but_o here_o by_o they_o be_v manifest_v not_o to_o be_v all_o of_o us._n and_o therefore_o to_o express_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o a_o word_n the_o horror_n of_o this_o name_n as_o the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n cry_v unto_o elizcus_n the_o prophet_n after_o they_o have_v taste_v the_o pottage_n mors_fw-la in_o olla_fw-es vir_fw-la dei_fw-la mors_fw-la in_o olla_fw-es death_n be_v in_o the_o pot_n o_o man_n of_o god_n death_n be_v in_o the_o pot_n even_o so_o may_v i_o more_o just_o take_v up_o this_o complaint_n &_o cry_v out_o unto_o every_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n &_o that_o against_o all_o heresy_n &_o the_o very_a name_n heretic_n mors_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la mors_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la there_o be_v nothing_o but_o death_n &_o destruction_n desolation_n &_o damnation_n in_o this_o very_a name_n 27._o and_o here_o we_o shall_v be_v enforce_v as_o it_o be_v to_o ponder_v upon_o this_o point_n somewhat_o more_o at_o large_a and_o to_o extend_v the_o bond_n of_o this_o ensue_a consideration_n especial_o for_o so_o much_o as_o concern_v we_o so_o near_o as_o it_o do_v this_o matter_n can_v be_v but_o worthy_a of_o our_o weighty_a ponderation_n and_o the_o rather_o will_v we_o the_o more_o deliberate_o consider_v of_o this_o point_n for_o
inform_v my_o judgement_n that_o i_o can_v not_o do_v otherwise_o then_o give_v my_o full_a consent_n unto_o it_o nor_o do_v i_o possible_o see_v how_o the_o same_o may_v be_v any_o way_n deny_v or_o probable_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n impugn_a and_o be_v there_o not_o cause_n now_o that_o i_o shall_v look_v about_o i_o examine_v the_o ground_n whereupon_o i_o stand_v serious_o debate_v with_o myself_o of_o my_o late_a resolution_n and_o change_v make_v in_o religion_n weigh_v &_o ponder_v all_o thing_n with_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o serious_a meditation_n 31._o wherefore_o retire_v myself_o to_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o bless_a father_n which_o according_a to_o vincentius_n direction_n i_o have_v ever_o resolve_v upon_o for_o the_o infallible_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o my_o faith_n to_o see_v what_o they_o say_v in_o this_o matter_n since_o that_o other_o foundation_n they_o this_o can_v no_o man_n lay_v i_o find_v the_o same_o severity_n in_o their_o assertion_n &_o judgment_n which_o argue_v that_o the_o school_n doctor_n have_v original_o draw_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o doctrine_n from_o the_o most_o pure_a fountain_n 32._o and_o first_o i_o find_v that_o the_o say_v heretic_n and_o heresy_n be_v foretell_v and_o prophesy_v of_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n as_o namely_o that_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n immediate_o after_o christ_n time_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v continue_v from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o matth._n 24._o 5._o joan._n 5._o 44._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 19_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 17._o 18._o 2._o pet._n 1._o 2._o 1._o joan._n 2._o 18._o 19_o and_o elsewhere_o throughout_o the_o whole_a volume_n of_o god_n book_n all_o which_o as_o large_a commentary_n discover_v unto_o we_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n but_o i_o will_v confine_v myself_o within_o short_a &_o straight_a bound_n and_o at_o this_o time_n i_o will_v especial_o ponder_v upon_o these_o three_o ensue_a place_n namely_o matth._n 7._o 15._o 16._o 3._o ●it_n 10._o and_o 11._o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n jude_n almost_o throughout_o the_o whole_a epistle_n 33._o and_o first_o he_o that_o speak_v as_o never_o man_n speak_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o soul_n best_a physician_n that_o ever_o be_v give_v we_o both_o a_o serious_a admonition_n and_o a_o perspicuous_a 16._o description_n of_o heretic_n attendite_fw-la à_fw-la f●lsis_fw-la prophetis_fw-la etc._n etc._n beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n beware_v there_o be_v the_o admonition_n of_o false_a prophet_n there_o be_v the_o deception_n and_o circumuention_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n there_o be_v their_o fraudulent_a hypocrisy_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n there_o be_v their_o violent_a cruelty_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o frutte_n saviour_n there_o be_v a_o manifest_a discovery_n of_o their_o impiety_n again_o beware_v that_o be_v take_v heed_n look_v about_o you_o there_o be_v imminent_a peril_n and_o hazard_v of_o your_o soul_n hang_v over_o your_o head_n of_o false_a prophet_n false_a deceaver_n false_a apostle_n antichrist_n heretic_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n pretend_v outward_o to_o be_v angel_n of_o light_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n messenger_n of_o satan_n and_o spirit_n of_o darkness_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n if_o not_o by_o their_o word_n yet_o by_o their_o work_n if_o not_o by_o their_o say_n yet_o by_o their_o meaning_n last_o beware_v never_o be_v there_o any_o more_o need_n of_o circumspection_n of_o false_a prophet_n i_o point_v you_o to_o the_o poison_n that_o come_v from_o the_o person_n which_o come_v unto_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n have_v nothing_o in_o their_o mouth_n but_o euangelium_fw-la christi_fw-la euangelium_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o pure_a gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o pure_a gospel_n of_o christ_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n corrupter_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o soule-quellers_a devour_v the_o innocent_a sheep_n of_o christ_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o gospel_n shall_v argue_v to_o their_o face_n the_o impiety_n &_o impurity_n of_o their_o heart_n 34._o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v excellent_o expound_v 4._o both_o by_o tertullian_n and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n and_o first_o what_o be_v this_o sheep_n clothing_n say_v tertull._n but_o the_o extrinsecall_a name_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o what_o be_v these_o raven_a wolf_n but_o deceitful_a 36._o gloss_n and_o spirit_n inwardl_o lurk_v and_o infest_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v these_o false_a prophet_n but_o false_a preacher_n who_o be_v these_o false_a apostle_n but_o adulterous_a euangelizator_n who_o be_v these_o antichrist_n now_o and_o always_o but_o rebel_n against_o christ_n hurt_v and_o persecute_v the_o church_n with_o the_o secret_a impiety_n of_o their_o heresy_n asmuch_o as_n antichrist_n shall_v then_o do_v with_o his_o open_a cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n so_o he_o 35._o second_o vincentius_n go_v further_a and_o though_o he_o live_v twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o yet_o speak_v he_o so_o particular_o to_o this_o point_n of_o unmask_v heresy_n &_o heretic_n as_o if_o he_o have_v live_v in_o the_o very_a day_n of_o luther_n calvin_n and_o the_o protestant_n apostasy_n which_o enforce_v i_o upon_o a_o often_o &_o scrious_a meditation_n to_o conclude_v that_o his_o spirit_n be_v inspire_v and_o his_o pen_n guide_v by_o the_o immediate_a hand_n &_o finger_n of_o god_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o then_o speak_v &_o interpret_v what_o be_v this_o sheep_n clothing_n say_v he_o but_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o be_v these_o raven_a wolf_n but_o the_o cruel_a virulent_a &_o violent_a interpretation_n of_o heretic_n who_o always_o infest_v the_o fold_n of_o the_o church_n and_o tear_v in_o piece_n the_o flock_n of_o christ_n by_o all_o mean_n that_o possible_o they_o can_v but_o that_o they_o may_v deceitful_o steal_v upon_o theunwary_a sheep_n they_o put_v of_o their_o wolwish_a shape_n continue_v in_o their_o wolvish_a cruelty_n and_o they_o wrap_v and_o cover_v themselves_o with_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o be_v with_o certain_a fleece_n that_o when_o any_o man_n shall_v perceive_v the_o softness_n of_o their_o will_v he_o may_v not_o fear_v the_o sharpness_n of_o their_o tooth_n cite_v but_o what_o say_v our_o saviour_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n that_o be_v when_o they_o begin_v not_o only_o to_o bring_v but_o also_o to_o expound_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n nor_o yet_o to_o brag_v of_o they_o only_o but_o further_o to_o interpret_v they_o then_o their_o bitterness_n than_o their_o sharpness_n than_o their_o madness_n be_v perceyve_v then_o their_o new_a poison_n shall_v be_v vent_v forth_o then_o their_o profane_a novelty_n shall_v be_v detect_v then_o shall_v thou_o see_v the_o hedge_n &_o fence_v to_o be_v cut_v and_o break_v down_o then_o shall_v thou_o see_v the_o ancient_a mere_n and_o bound_n of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v translate_v and_o remove_v then_o catholic_a faith_n shall_v be_v violate_v then_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n annihilate_v and_o destroy_v hither_o to_o my_o author_n 36._o and_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o effectual_o or_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v interpret_v this_o place_n more_o true_o be_v not_o all_o heretic_n here_o unmask_v be_v not_o the_o protestant_n palpable_o discover_v cover_v their_o heretical_a face_n with_o the_o vizard_n of_o scripture_n when_o otherwise_o they_o dare_v not_o appear_v in_o their_o wolvish_a and_o thievish_a shape_n if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o or_o that_o i_o wrong_v they_o in_o aught_o nay_o if_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a in_o their_o own_o conscience_n of_o much_o more_o than_o i_o can_v charge_v they_o withal_o let_v the_o just_a doom_n of_o heaven_n revenge_v it_o upon_o my_o soul_n and_o let_v i_o never_o see_v the_o face_n of_o god_n haud_fw-la ignotaloquor_fw-la what_o i_o speak_v i_o speak_v upon_o long_a practice_n and_o experience_n which_o i_o have_v have_v among_o they_o and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o then_o be_v they_o of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o false_a prophet_n concern_v who_o our_o saviour_n give_v we_o admonition_n here_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n which_o come_v to_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n etc._n etc._n why_o but_o the_o protestant_n will_v plead_v in_o general_n that_o they_o have_v scripture_n to_o confirm_v every_o assertion_n of_o their_o
so_o order_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o minister_v store_n of_o matter_n unto_o heretic_n when_o i_o read_v in_o scripture_n oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la there_o must_v be_v heresy_n which_o can_v be_v without_o scripture_n and_o this_o 39_o be_v my_o former_a author_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n wrest_v and_o pervert_v by_o several_a heretic_n in_o his_o day_n for_o maintenance_n of_o their_o several_a heresy_n which_o be_v so_o here_o be_v neither_o certainty_n nor_o generality_n nor_o facility_n nor_o perspicuity_n nor_o infallibility_n in_o this_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n bare_o and_o naked_o propose_v of_o itself_o alone_o neither_o can_v it_o ever_o be_v infer_v by_o any_o seem_a probable_a conclusion_n that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v this_o infallible_a way_n which_o we_o do_v further_o illustrate_v by_o this_o familiar_a example_n obvious_a unto_o every_o man_n capacity_n 56._o if_o some_o rude_a and_o unlearned_a countryman_n repair_v up_o to_o the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o prosecute_v some_o suit_n in_o law_n touch_v a_o farm_n or_o house_n or_o matter_n of_o less_o moment_n it_o these_o man_n i_o say_v after_o conference_n have_v with_o their_o learned_a counsel_n shall_v receive_v no_o other_o answer_n nor_o comfort_n nor_o direction_n of_o they_o for_o further_o manage_n of_o their_o suit_n but_o be_v remit_v by_o they_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o law_n itself_o without_o any_o judge_n or_o counsailour_n they_o be_v of_o themselves_o not_o able_a either_o to_o read_v or_o understand_v the_o law_n much_o less_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o their_o example_n proper_a case_n and_o peculiar_a suit_n will_v not_o every_o reasonable_a and_o conscionable_a man_n condemn_v these_o lawyer_n and_o have_v not_o the_o poor_a countryman_n themselves_o be_v undo_v by_o this_o mean_n in_o their_o worldly_a estate_n just_a cause_n to_o complain_v and_o cry_v out_o against_o the_o falsehood_n and_o treachery_n of_o their_o counsellor_n and_o yet_o behold_v here_o in_o a_o suit_n of_o of_o suit_n and_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n and_o importance_n in_o the_o world_n not_o in_o a_o title_n or_o trial_n of_o a_o farm_n or_o house_n but_o concern_v our_o interest_n and_o right_n of_o inheritance_n unto_o the_o heavenly_a mansion_n we_o be_v this_o way_n worse_o than_o thus_o since_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o far_o great_a importance_n abuse_v delude_v betray_v we_o be_v promiscuous_o send_v learned_a unlearned_a man_n woman_n young_a old_a to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o mystical_a volume_n of_o god_n his_o sacred_a and_o seaven-fold-sealed_n book_n as_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o the_o revelation_n apocal._n 5._o 1._o we_o must_v seek_v search_n confer_v compare_v expound_v interpret_v every_o man_n must_v there_o be_v a_o chooser_n every_o woman_n a_o expositor_n and_o every_o creature_n must_v be_v his_o own_o carver_n all_o must_v presume_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o can_v err_v all_o presume_v to_o be_v teach_v immediate_o from_o god_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n sola_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la arse_a say_v s._n hierome_n against_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n quam_fw-la omnes_fw-la sibi_fw-la vendicant_a hanc_fw-la garrula_fw-la anus_fw-la hanc_fw-la delirus_fw-la senex_fw-la hanc_fw-la sophista_fw-la verbosus_fw-la hanc_fw-la universi_fw-la praesumunt_fw-la lacerant_fw-la docent_fw-la antequam_fw-la discunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_o the_o art_n of_o scripture_n be_v it_o presb._n which_o every_o one_o challenge_v to_o himself_o this_o the_o prate_a old_a wife_n this_o the_o dote_a old_a man_n this_o the_o babble_a sophist_n this_o all_o of_o they_o together_o presume_v to_o know_v and_o teach_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n before_o they_o learn_v it_o so_o he_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o way_n and_o ground_n prescription_n direction_n rule_n and_o line_n that_o our_o heretical_a sectary_n can_v afford_v we_o for_o the_o guide_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o ground_v of_o our_o faith_n will_v any_o man_n therefore_o hereafter_o that_o have_v but_o the_o least_o care_n or_o that_o can_v entertain_v but_o one_o thought_n either_o of_o the_o present_a of_o future_a wellfarre_o of_o his_o soul_n rely_v upon_o such_o false_a guide_n &_o blind_a teacher_n since_o this_o ground_n of_o scripture_n alone_o sense_v by_o a_o private_a spirit_n be_v be_v &_o ever_o shall_v be_v the_o common_a ground_n nay_o rather_o desperate_a shift_n and_o refuge_n of_o all_o condemn_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n and_o that_o purposely_o that_o they_o may_v avoid_v the_o censure_n and_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n 57_o there_o follow_v then_o the_o way_n indeed_o appoint_v by_o god_n reveal_v by_o the_o holy-ghost_n design_v by_o christ_n church_n and_o propose_v by_o the_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sure_a easy_a evident_a general_a and_o infallible_a way_n indeed_o which_o be_v the_o universal_a know_a catholic_a church_n in_o every_o age_n which_o be_v perspicuous_a and_o notorious_a easy_a to_o be_v find_v for_o that_o it_o can_v be_v hide_v it_o be_v compare_v by_o holy_a scripture_n to_o a_o city_n place_v upon_o a_o hill_n as_o s._n augustine_n in_o diverse_a prolix_a treatise_n of_o he_o do_v evident_o 4._o demonstrate_v it_o be_v a_o light_n upon_o a_o candlestick_n it_o lighten_v all_o through_o the_o egyptian_a darkness_n of_o this_o world_n schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o lead_v their_o soul_n into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v that_o pillar_n of_o fire_n that_o lead_v all_o god_n choose_a people_n through_o the_o vast_a and_o roar_a wilderness_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o night_n darkness_n of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o promise_a land_n of_o canaan_n i_o mean_v the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n it_o be_v general_o also_o figure_v by_o the_o dew_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o floor_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o the_o fleece_n when_o gedeon_n require_v the_o miracle_n to_o be_v double_v which_o be_v a_o mystical_a representation_n of_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n and_o christian_a congregation_n imply_v also_o that_o the_o dew_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o save_a grace_n shall_v at_o last_o pass_v 12._o from_o the_o fleece_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o floor_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o all_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o this_o catholic_n christian_n church_n shall_v extend_v to_o all_o serve_v for_o all_o learned_a unlearned_a young_a 40._o old_a high_a low_a great_a small_a for_o that_o all_o sort_n sex_n age_n and_o condition_n of_o people_n may_v repair_v unto_o she_o receive_v her_o doctrine_n admit_v her_o instruction_n and_o direction_n by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o her_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o every_o age_n and_o final_o this_o way_n be_v a_o most_o sure_a certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n for_o that_o christ_n have_v express_o assure_v and_o promise_v we_o that_o he_o will_v be_v continual_o with_o this_o church_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n that_o he_o will_v send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o instruct_v direct_v and_o induce_v this_o church_n in_o omnem_fw-la veritatem_fw-la into_o all_o truth_n &_o suggerit_fw-la vobis_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la dixere_fw-la vobis_fw-la and_o it_o shall_v suggest_v unto_o you_o all_o that_o i_o will_v from_o heaven_n speak_v or_o notify_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v christ_n his_o promise_n unto_o his_o apostle_n &_o in_o their_o person_n unto_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o and_o last_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o this_o 18._o church_n 58._o this_o then_o to_o exclude_v all_o bypath_n and_o blind_a way_n of_o heretic_n be_v the_o way_n indeed_o this_o be_v that_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o tertullian_n speak_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o rule_n and_o so_o certain_a that_o nullas_fw-la habet_fw-la apud_fw-la nos_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la nisi_fw-la quae_n haereses_fw-la inserunt_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la haereticos_fw-la saciunt_fw-la no_o question_n be_v 14_o so_o much_o as_o move_v with_o we_o concern_v this_o rule_n but_o such_o as_o heresy_n cause_n and_o which_o very_a question_n move_v concern_v the_o church_n do_v cause_n and_o breed_v heretic_n 59_o this_o church_n be_v once_o publish_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o promise_n he_o have_v make_v unto_o her_o be_v once_o diwlge_v what_o follow_v but_o that_o all_o man_n present_o that_o have_v any_o care_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n flock_v unto_o she_o begin_v to_o lay_v handfast_a and_o houldfast_n on_o this_o way_n and_o to_o have_v recourse_n in_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n unto_o the_o common_a know_a catholic_a church_n of_o their_o age_n for_o explication_n and_o final_a decision_n thereof_o so_o shall_v you_o read_v act._n 15_o 6._o that_o the_o apostle_n immediate_o after_o the_o ascension_n church_n of_o our_o saviour_n assemble_v the_o church_n together_o for_o the_o detide_n of_o that_o
great_a doubt_n that_o then_o arise_v in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n of_o moses_n shall_v be_v join_v necessary_a with_o the_o new_a law_n of_o christ_n and_o because_o they_o will_v leave_v a_o pattern_n for_o all_o succeed_a age_n to_o follow_v they_o determine_v the_o matter_n and_o themselves_o i_o mean_v the_o apostle_n and_o prelate_n of_o that_o first_o age_n decide_v the_o doubt_n by_o those_o high_a word_n of_o authority_n take_v from_o the_o foresay_a commission_n of_o our_o saviour_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la santo_n 28._o &_o nobis_fw-la it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o for_o the_o church_n and_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n go_v inseparable_o 20._o together_o in_o regard_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n make_v unto_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ever_o keep_v his_o residence_n in_o she_o guide_v she_o govern_v she_o direct_v she_o and_o sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o all_o her_o consultation_n and_o assembly_n and_o therefore_o this_o umpiring_a and_o determine_v form_n of_o speech_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v use_v in_o the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o the_o say_v visible_a church_n until_o our_o day_n &_o will_v be_v frequent_v still_o especial_o in_o general_a counsel_n even_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n to_o put_v a_o firm_a period_n and_o full_a conclusion_n unto_o all_o controversy_n that_o come_v in_o question_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o the_o same_o authority_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o that_o first_o church_n have_v for_o direct_v of_o man_n soul_n unto_o their_o salvation_n the_o very_a self_n same_o and_o none_o other_o have_v the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o our_o age_n and_o have_v have_v in_o all_o age_n and_o shall_v have_v in_o all_o to_o come_v verum_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la variat_fw-la it_o be_v a_o ancient_a prescription_n and_o no_o more_o ancient_a than_o true_a god_n gift_n and_o grace_n confer_v upon_o his_o church_n be_v without_o repentance_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v ever_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n martyr_n and_o other_o succeed_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n and_o christ_n his_o promise_n be_v not_o for_o one_o age_n only_o he_o shed_v not_o his_o precious_a blood_n for_o those_o of_o his_o age_n alone_o but_o for_o all_o all_o be_v alike_o near_o unto_o he_o all_o be_v alike_o dear_a unto_o he_o he_o take_v our_o nature_n in_o general_a to_o save_v mankind_n in_o general_a and_o therefore_o the_o care_n he_o have_v for_o one_o age_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o he_o have_v for_o all_o succeed_a age_n of_o the_o same_o as_o well_o for_o the_o last_o as_o for_o the_o first_o and_o this_o care_n of_o he_o continue_v so_o long_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n endure_v 60._o this_o remittance_n then_o and_o reference_n unto_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n original_o proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v continual_o perpetuate_v by_o all_o succeed_a age_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n paul_n in_o a_o controversy_n of_o lesser_a importance_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n about_o woman_n be_v veil_v in_o the_o church_n say_v to_o shut_v up_o the_o door_n to_o all_o further_a contention_n that_o if_o 16_o any_o man_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v contentious_a we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n nor_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o god_n repress_v the_o contentious_a man_n as_o you_o see_v with_o the_o authority_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n so_o do_v all_o subsequent_a father_n of_o the_o orthodox_a church_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o private_a write_n or_o in_o the_o world_n grand_a parliament_n in_o general_n counsel_n in_o all_o their_o conflict_n with_o heretic_n they_o ever_o use_v to_o repel_v and_o repress_v they_o by_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o mean_n and_o that_o be_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o know_v catholic_a church_n and_o look_v what_o sentence_n they_o pronounce_v against_o they_o for_o their_o contumacy_n see_v what_o censure_n they_o inflict_v upon_o they_o for_o their_o heresy_n it_o remain_v good_a against_o they_o and_o irrevocable_a it_o be_v ratyfy_v as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n which_o can_v not_o be_v alter_v their_o authority_n 15._o be_v ground_v immediate_o upon_o those_o word_n of_o verity_n what_o soever_o you_o bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o tribunal_n of_o heaven_n confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 19_o upon_o earth_n nay_o stand_v expect_v what_o be_v do_v by_o it_o upon_o earth_n such_o be_v the_o mystical_a dependency_n betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o such_o be_v the_o mutual_a correspondency_n betwixt_o the_o head_n and_o his_o member_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n dare_v then_o any_o man_n hereafter_o oppose_v his_o private_a spirit_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o church_n or_o will_v he_o impudent_o presume_v to_o prefer_v his_o own_o conceit_n and_o opinion_n before_o her_o public_a tradition_n 61._o ancient_a s._n irenaeus_n who_o be_v in_o manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apostolorum_fw-la for_o he_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o age_n after_o they_o write_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o his_o day_n and_o have_v first_o declare_v how_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v visible_o plant_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o how_o it_o be_v continue_v to_o his_o time_n do_v then_o portrait_v out_o unto_o we_o &_o discourse_n at_o large_a of_o the_o authority_n sufficiency_n treasury_n tradition_n and_o absolute_a perfection_n of_o this_o church_n for_o the_o repel_v of_o all_o heresy_n and_o deliver_v of_o all_o truth_n his_o word_n be_v 4._o these_o tantae_fw-la igitur_fw-la ostensiones_fw-la cum_fw-la haec_fw-la sint_fw-la etc._n etc._n whereas_o these_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v say_v be_v so_o great_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n we_o must_v not_o yet_o seek_v the_o truth_n from_o other_o church_n which_o be_v easy_o take_v from_o the_o church_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n do_v most_o full_o lay_v up_o in_o she_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o truth_n as_o in_o a_o certain_a rich_a treasure-house_n so_o as_o every_o man_n that_o will_v may_v take_v from_o thence_o the_o liquor_n or_o sustenance_n of_o life_n for_o that_o be_v the_o entrance_v unto_o life_n everlasting_a to_o believe_v the_o church_n &_o all_o other_o that_o fly_v this_o way_n be_v thief_n and_o murderer_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v avoid_v they_o that_o be_v such_o but_o with_o great_a diligence_n we_o must_v affect_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o from_o she_o take_v the_o tradition_n of_o truth_n and_o true_o if_o our_o contention_n be_v but_o about_o some_o small_a question_n in_o religion_n yet_o ought_v not_o we_o to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n have_v once_o be_v conversant_a and_o so_o take_v from_o they_o that_o which_o be_v certain_a and_o clear_a for_o decide_v of_o the_o question_n and_o what_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o have_v it_o not_o be_v needful_a notwithstanding_o to_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o have_v leave_v unto_o we_o to_o who_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o apostle_n have_v commit_v those_o church_n 62._o thus_o far_o s._n irenaeus_n which_o i_o have_v of_o purpose_n choose_v to_o cite_v more_o at_o large_a for_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a alone_a to_o disclose_v his_o judgement_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o first_o age_n next_o after_o the_o apostle_n how_o far_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n then_o stretch_v and_o be_v esteem_v for_o especial_o for_o clear_v solue_v and_o decide_v of_o all_o doubt_n that_o possible_o can_v arise_v in_o religion_n and_o the_o reason_n there_o render_v by_o the_o same_o father_n be_v this_o she_o be_v the_o store-house_n wherein_o christ_n merit_n and_o the_o church_n treasure_n be_v lay_v up_o she_o be_v the_o way_n of_o life_n whereby_o we_o may_v come_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o escape_v everlasting_a death_n that_o all_o be_v thief_n yea_o murderer_n of_o soul_n that_o do_v impugn_v she_o or_o seek_v other_o way_n of_o trial_n then_o she_o and_o her_o tradition_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n that_o this_o tradition_n be_v sufficient_a though_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n that_o from_o she_o and_o her_o alone_a the_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v take_v and_o not_o else_o tyme._n where_o that_o by_o she_o and_o her_o authority_n alone_o all_o doubt_n and_o question_n be_v to_o be_v so_o ve_v and_o decide_v can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o effectual_a than_o this_o or_o be_v there_o any_o more_o plain_a easy_a evident_a
and_o universal_a direction_n can_v any_o rule_n be_v more_o probable_a and_o infallible_a than_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o do_v agree_v both_o my_o foresay_a author_n in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n as_o also_o all_o that_o succeed_v he_o &_o take_v the_o like_a enterprise_n in_o hand_n of_o writing_n and_o prescribe_v against_o heretic_n as_o tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n s._n augustine_n s._n athanasius_n epiphanius_n theodoret_n s._n hierome_n s._n leo_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o his_o golden_a book_n against_o the_o profane_a innovation_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n and_o diverse_a other_o which_o to_o avoid_v prolixity_n i_o omit_v all_o these_o do_v principal_o and_o real_o provoke_v and_o challenge_v all_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n unto_o this_o only_a and_o sure_a way_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o their_o day_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o discern_v what_o be_v true_o catholic_a and_o what_o be_v heretical_a their_o several_a sentence_n be_v to_o prolix_a to_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o strict_a precinct_n and_o narrow_a bound_n of_o my_o brief_a intend_a consideration_n 63._o and_o now_o to_o put_v a_o period_n to_o this_o my_o three_o consideration_n lest_o it_o exceed_v a_o due_a proportion_n the_o upshot_n be_v this_o for_o asmuch_o then_n as_o this_o visible_a christian_a church_n begin_v and_o found_v by_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o visible_a church_n make_v and_o consist_v of_o visible_a man_n govern_v by_o visible_a pastor_n have_v visible_o descend_v from_o age_n to_o age_n through_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n by_o all_o lawful_a and_o ordinary_a succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o tertullian_n videsupr_fw-la require_v of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n as_o they_o will_v avoid_v the_o blot_n of_o heresy_n that_o have_v lineal_o come_v down_o to_o our_o day_n second_o for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o church_n be_v esteem_v in_o every_o age_n to_o be_v the_o same_o for_o infallible_a direction_n that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o former_a first_o age_n through_o the_o assurance_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n to_o that_o effect_n and_o last_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n of_o the_o fifteen_o age_n have_v in_o a_o general_a council_n examine_v decide_v conden_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o heresy_n in_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o main_a point_n by_o name_n &_o have_v accurse_v and_o anathematise_v consideration_n both_o they_o and_o all_o their_o participant_n to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n &_o that_o according_a to_o the_o very_a self_n same_o ground_n whereby_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v use_v to_o curse_v &_o anathematise_v all_o old_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n in_o former_a time_n these_o thing_n when_o i_o consider_v with_o more_o attention_n &_o make_v a_o general_a reflection_n thereon_o a_o sudden_a fear_n and_o care_n astonish_v yea_o as_o it_o be_v overwhelm_v i_o for_o that_o my_o everlasting_a salvation_n depend_v upon_o this_o point_n i_o have_v be_v so_o negligent_a in_o examine_v the_o premise_n and_o now_o i_o plain_o see_v as_o in_o a_o perfect_a glass_n of_o most_o impartial_a judgement_n that_o unless_o i_o can_v imagine_v with_o myself_o as_o diverse_a other_o fanatical_o do_v that_o christ_n promise_n have_v fail_v &_o that_o the_o first_o visible_a christian_a and_o catholic_a church_n found_v by_o he_o and_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v fail_v vanish_v and_o perish_v as_o be_v overcome_v by_o helgate_n and_o over_o grow_v with_o the_o weed_n of_o error_n &_o heresy_n i_o can_v never_o have_v any_o hope_n of_o salvation_n as_o long_o as_o i_o continue_v in_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o issue_n of_o that_o consideration_n the_o four_o consideration_n there_o remain_v now_o a_o four_o consideration_n the_o subject_n whereof_o which_o notwithstanding_o perhaps_o be_v catholic_a of_o great_a importance_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v this_o to_o wit_n how_o out_o of_o the_o premise_n a_o man_n may_v probable_o collect_v nay_o necessary_o conclude_v who_o opinion_n be_v catholic_a and_o who_o heretical_a and_o thereupon_o may_v reflect_v upon_o himself_o in_o what_o state_n or_o condition_n he_o stand_v betwixt_o both_o as_o either_o affect_v to_o the_o one_o or_o interest_v in_o the_o other_o and_o albeit_o this_o have_v be_v partly_o discover_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v in_o the_o first_o consideration_n touch_v the_o name_n catholic_a that_o signify_v universal_a and_o whole_a and_o not_o a_o part_n or_o singularity_n in_o opinion_n by_o choice_n of_o a_o man_n own_o will_n and_o judgement_n for_o so_o heretic_n do_v signify_v as_o have_v be_v lay_v forth_o in_o the_o second_o consideration_n yet_o shall_v it_o be_v make_v more_o manifest_a by_o the_o particular_a practice_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o when_o the_o name_n shall_v pass_v into_o nature_n and_o appellation_n be_v turn_v into_o application_n and_o first_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o point_n in_o a_o word_n the_o catholic_a admit_v all_o whole_o and_o entire_o without_o addition_n or_o detraction_n which_o the_o know_a catholic_a church_n propose_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o her_o son_n as_o she_o have_v it_o reveal_v unto_o she_o from_o god_n her_o father_n but_o as_o for_o the_o heretic_n and_o the_o chooser_n tamquam_fw-la dominus_fw-la propryiuris_fw-la as_o he_o that_o will_v take_v his_o own_o swing_n though_o it_o be_v in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n he_o make_v himself_o judge_n over_o all_o i_o mean_v god_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n admit_v some_o and_o reject_v the_o rest_n as_o it_o please_v his_o private_a fancy_n or_o displease_v his_o peevish_a judgement_n he_o neither_o respect_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o regard_v his_o own_o obedience_n due_a thereunto_o his_o ground_n be_v either_o scripture_n false_o by_o he_o interpret_v or_o a_o private_a lie_a spirit_n such_o as_o micheas_n the_o lord_n true_a prophet_n prophesy_v to_o be_v in_o the_o false_a prophet_n of_o baal_n wherein_o he_o be_v delude_v or_o other_o argument_n of_o reason_n &_o nature_n against_o 22._o faith_n and_o the_o god_n of_o nature_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v bewitch_v &_o pervert_v contrary_a to_o all_o true_a and_o only_o save_v catholic_a ground_n contrary_a to_o that_o sure_a certain_a and_o infallible_a way_n of_o trial_n which_o erst_o while_o we_o treat_v of_o in_o the_o three_o consideration_n and_o purpose_n now_o by_o god_n holy_a assistance_n to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o in_o this_o 65._o some_o man_n i_o find_v to_o entertain_v this_o concepit_fw-la that_o english_a protestant_n and_o roman_a catholic_n may_v live_v in_o their_o several_a profession_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v save_v together_o and_o much_o more_o they_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o all_o protestant_n of_o different_a profession_n and_o sect_n as_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n and_o much_o more_o the_o different_a sort_n of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o sect_n as_o caluinist_n in_o england_n distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o molles_n and_o rigidi_fw-la moderate_a protestant_n religion_n and_o fervent_a puritan_n and_o the_o reason_n for_o this_o their_o opinion_n be_v first_o of_o doctrine_n for_o that_o every_o one_o of_o their_o difference_n do_v not_o make_v heresy_n or_o if_o they_o do_v yet_o not_o so_o grievous_a heresy_n as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n condemn_v and_o anathematise_v they_o mean_v such_o heresy_n as_o impugn_a the_o person_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n the_o nature_n of_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n the_o incarnation_n and_o passion_n and_o the_o like_a &_o consequent_o though_o those_o ancient_a heresy_n be_v damnable_a yet_o be_v not_o those_o of_o our_o day_n plead_v the_o protestant_n but_o that_o both_o part_n live_v well_o may_v be_v save_v as_o his_o majesty_n in_o this_o his_o premonition_n to_o prince_n do_v testify_v that_o his_o noble_a mother_n send_v he_o word_n not_o long_o before_o her_o martyrdom_n by_o the_o master_n of_o her_o household_n a_o scotish_n gentleman_n yet_o live_v that_o his_o majesty_n may_v persist_v in_o his_o 34._o protestant_a religion_n and_o yet_o do_v well_o enough_o if_o he_o live_v virtuous_o and_o govern_v according_o 66._o but_o sure_o how_o far_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o master_n of_o household_n be_v a_o protestant_n as_o i_o hear_v he_o then_o be_v meluin_n and_o now_o be_v may_v extend_v itself_o to_o be_v believe_v against_o the_o mistress_n and_o high_a lady_n of_o that_o household_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o that_o quality_n and_o consequence_n i_o know_v not_o yet_o certain_a i_o be_o of_o this_o that_o the_o opinion_n that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v so_o save_v be_v most_o false_a and_o absurd_a in_o itself_o and_o very_o unlikely_a also_o to_o proceed_v from_o her_o
can_v to_o proceed_v in_o his_o suit_n yet_o if_o the_o nine_o other_o of_o equal_a worth_n and_o weight_n with_o he_o shall_v be_v of_o contrary_a opinion_n dissuade_v he_o from_o the_o suit_n assure_v he_o upon_o their_o learning_n that_o he_o will_v be_v cast_v in_o the_o same_o yea_o and_o condemn_v if_o he_o proceed_v therein_o will_v not_o this_o man_n now_o begin_v to_o consider_v more_o serious_o of_o his_o suit_n intend_v of_o his_o right_a pretend_a will_v he_o not_o view_v over_o and_o over_o his_o write_n examine_v all_o his_o evidence_n again_o and_o again_o least_o in_o aspire_v to_o be_v make_v for_o ever_o he_o chance_v for_o ever_o to_o be_v undo_v even_o so_o the_o case_n stand_v in_o the_o point_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n here_o be_v a_o royal_a banquet_n provide_v for_o your_o princely_a majesty_n here_o be_v a_o princely_a inheritance_n indeed_o a_o incorruptible_a diadem_n of_o glory_n prepare_v for_o your_o excellency_n this_o banquet_n be_v not_o to_o continue_v for_o a_o hundred_o and_o fourscore_o day_n as_o that_o of_o assuerus_n do_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o majesty_n of_o a_o earthly_a 1._o monarch_n but_o it_o endure_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o throughout_o all_o eternity_n to_o disclose_v the_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o glory_n and_o riches_n of_o the_o heavenly_a deity_n &_o divine_a omnipotency_n the_o food_n of_o this_o banquet_n be_v neither_o earthly_a nor_o material_a but_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a agnus_n occisus_fw-la ab_fw-la origine_fw-la mundi_fw-la it_o be_v the_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o be_v set_v and_o serve_v on_o this_o table_n nay_o deus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la nobis_fw-la 28._o futurus_fw-la est_fw-la omne_fw-la in_o ommbus_fw-la it_o be_v almighty_a god_n himself_o who_o will_v then_o as_o s._n paul_n teach_v become_v unto_o we_o all_o in_o all_o that_o be_v all_o in_o the_o eye_n for_o our_o vision_n and_o all_o in_o the_o taste_n for_o our_o refection_n and_o all_o in_o the_o touch_n for_o our_o fruition_n all_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o our_o consolation_n and_o all_o in_o our_o smell_n for_o delectation_n in_o a_o word_n all_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o body_n and_o all_o in_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n deus_fw-la omne_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la for_o our_o plenary_a perfection_n 89._o beside_o this_o banquet_n there_o be_v a_o princely_a inheritance_n and_o a_o incorruptible_a crown_n of_o glory_n prepare_v for_o your_o majesty_n and_o this_o crown_n so_o far_o excel_v all_o earthly_a crown_n as_o immortal_a exceed_v mortal_a incorruptible_a corruptible_a in_o a_o word_n as_o far_o as_o god_n excel_v man_n and_o a_o thing_n infinite_a surmount_v a_o thing_n finite_a betwixt_o all_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o proportion_n and_o be_v there_o not_o cause_n now_o that_o your_o majesty_n shall_v beware_v of_o the_o poison_n of_o heresy_n that_o kill_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o will_v not_o your_o zealous_a and_o religious_a hart_n hereafter_o peruse_v over_o all_o forge_a write_n and_o never_o cease_v search_v until_o you_o have_v find_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n whereby_o your_o majesty_n can_v only_o lay_v claim_n to_o this_o crown_n of_o immortality_n 90._o and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o we_o your_o majesties_n humble_a subject_n and_o servant_n do_v in_o our_o daily_a sigh_n tear_n and_o prayer_n to_o almighty_a god_n beg_v at_o his_o hand_n to_o wit_n that_o our_o gracious_a god_n will_v of_o his_o merciful_a goodness_n vouchsafe_v so_o to_o inspire_v your_o princely_a hart_n with_o the_o principal_a spirit_n that_o you_o may_v once_o at_o the_o least_o come_v to_o make_v this_o reflection_n upon_o the_o course_n that_o you_o be_v in_o now_o concern_v religion_n then_o shall_v you_o easy_o discover_v the_o fraud_n and_o imposture_n of_o the_o protestant_a cause_n then_o shall_v you_o disclose_v the_o poison_a and_o invenomed_a drug_n of_o their_o erroneous_a opinion_n whereby_o they_o will_v insect_v both_o the_o body_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o princely_a person_n suspect_v no_o guile_n fear_v no_o such_o treachery_n and_o that_o to_o your_o everlasting_a destruction_n last_o then_o shall_v you_o descry_v how_o false_a and_o counterfeit_v their_o evidence_n be_v concern_v religion_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o hold_v plea_n for_o the_o foresay_a princely_a inheritance_n whereunto_o your_o noble_a person_n be_v interest_v 91._o your_o majesty_n be_v bear_v among_o the_o protestant_n as_o s._n augustine_n compassionate_o complain_v of_o diverse_a bear_v among_o the_o donatist_n &_o thereby_o you_o can_v not_o but_o receive_v that_o impression_n that_o be_v infuse_v and_o instill_v into_o you_o by_o your_o first_o educator_n and_o thereby_o you_o have_v be_v make_v as_o i_o trust_v rather_o credens_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la then_o haereticus_fw-la as_o the_o same_o father_n say_v of_o his_o friend_n honoratus_n your_o majesty_n be_v earnest_a now_o against_o the_o catholic_a roman_a faith_n and_o professor_n thereof_o and_o so_o be_v i_o myself_o too_o once_o and_o so_o be_v s._n augustine_n whilst_o he_o be_v a_o manichean_a and_o so_o be_v that_o great_a apostle_n s._n paul_n persuade_v himself_o no_o doubt_n that_o he_o ought_v yea_o that_o he_o shall_v do_v god_n good_a service_n persecute_v that_o 9_o way_n of_o christian_a profession_n until_o god_n have_v open_v his_o eye_n &_o enlighten_v his_o mind_n to_o see_v the_o erroneous_a course_n wherein_o he_o then_o be_v 92._o and_o now_o may_v it_o please_v your_o majesty_n to_o consider_v of_o this_o one_o reason_n which_o though_o it_o be_v the_o last_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o the_o least_o viz._n that_o so_o many_o of_o your_o majesty_n loyal_a subject_n man_n of_o considerable_a birth_n worth_n and_o quality_n yea_o and_o some_o of_o they_o such_o that_o have_v spend_v much_o precious_a time_n and_o have_v be_v content_a to_o exhaust_v their_o patrimony_n in_o your_o noble_a university_n and_o all_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o learning_n and_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n these_o man_n i_o say_v have_v now_o just_a reason_n to_o expect_v some_o preferment_n with_o other_o their_o equal_n after_o their_o long_a wearisome_a labour_n &_o endeavour_n will_v not_o so_o sudden_o change_v their_o mind_n as_o they_o do_v daily_o in_o this_o point_n of_o religion_n forgo_v all_o future_a hope_n and_o fortune_n abandon_v country_n kith_n and_o kin_n expose_v themselves_o to_o all_o temporal_a difficulty_n and_o loss_n england_n and_o that_o without_o constraint_n of_o any_o even_o voluntary_o and_o after_o all_o this_o to_o be_v ready_a to_o shed_v their_o blond_n and_o sacrifice_v their_o innocent_a life_n for_o their_o resolution_n make_v concern_v religion_n all_o which_o they_o can_v never_o do_v be_v it_o not_o that_o a_o high_a hand_n than_o human_a even_o the_o hand_n of_o heaven_n lead_v they_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o not_o upon_o the_o force_n and_o efficacy_n of_o evident_a truth_n when_o it_o please_v almighty_a god_n so_o to_o enlighten_v their_o understanding_n as_o in_o the_o midst_n and_o thick_a of_o the_o darkness_n of_o heresy_n to_o show_v they_o the_o only_a and_o alone_o save_v catholic_a truth_n and_o church_n as_o also_o to_o frame_v their_o will_n and_o inflame_v their_o affection_n to_o yield_v all_o obedience_n thereunto_o notwithstanding_o any_o obstacle_n whatsoever_o 93._o alas_o my_o dread_a sovereign_n what_o be_v rome_n to_o we_o english_a man_n that_o we_o shall_v so_o mind_v it_o or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o we_o shall_v much_o affect_v it_o or_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o we_o shall_v so_o high_o honour_v he_o be_v it_o not_o that_o rome_n ever_o be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o present_a faith_n of_o rome_n the_o former_a faith_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v it_o not_o that_o this_o convert_v our_o island_n this_o church_n first_o plant_v the_o christian_a faith_n in_o our_o island_n this_o bishop_n from_o time_n to_o time_n repair_v renew_v and_o continue_v the_o decay_a faith_n in_o our_o island_n in_o a_o word_n be_v it_o not_o that_o all_o that_o separate_v themselves_o from_o this_o head_n and_o origin_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v as_o beam_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o sun_n as_o bough_n violent_o break_v down_o from_o the_o tree_n as_o eccles_n channel_n &_o stream_n divide_v from_o their_o fountain_n which_o must_v needs_o dry_v up_o wither_v and_o consume_v to_o nothing_o this_o be_v the_o sole_a cause_n my_o liege_n lord_n that_o rome_n be_v so_o near_o and_o dear_a unto_o we_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o honour_v by_o we_o the_o faith_n of_o rome_n so_o receive_v of_o us._n this_o be_v may_v it_o please_v your_o majesty_n the_o only_a cause_n of_o our_o sudden_a change_n and_o constant_a resolution_n in_o
out_o of_o the_o new_a all_o these_o i_o say_v be_v receive_v by_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o the_o sense_n before_o define_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o holy_a and_o divine_a book_n write_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o almighty_a god_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o those_o who_o be_v pen_n of_o a_o ready_a writer_n and_o consequent_o these_o of_o the_o second_o rank_n be_v of_o no_o less_o authority_n nor_o infallible_a verity_n than_o those_o of_o the_o first_o order_n for_o that_o in_o thing_n immediate_o and_o a_o like_a proceed_n from_o god_n his_o spirit_n there_o can_v not_o be_v less_o or_o more_o truth_n but_o all_o be_v of_o equal_a credit_n and_o so_o equal_o to_o be_v receive_v honour_v esteem_v and_o believe_v and_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o catholic_n who_o for_o a_o infallible_a ground_n and_o assure_a direction_n in_o this_o matter_n follow_v not_o any_o private_a err_a spirit_n but_o the_o never-deceiving_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n her_o bridegroom_n have_v from_o all_o ancient_a time_n in_o former_a age_n in_o her_o counsel_n synod_n and_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n notify_v declare_v determine_v and_o establish_v the_o authority_n of_o these_o foresay_a book_n of_o the_o second_o rue_n for_o infallible_a and_o canonical_a that_o be_v to_o say_v declare_v they_o to_o be_v such_o and_o ever_o have_v be_v such_o to_o wit_n of_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a truth_n though_o sometime_o and_o among_o some_o man_n there_o have_v be_v doubt_n thereof_o and_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n to_o declare_v what_o be_v scripture_n but_o not_o to_o make_v it_o 30._o but_o as_o for_o the_o protestant_n i_o find_v such_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n such_o opposition_n and_o contradiction_n among_o they_o that_o they_o seem_v unto_o i_o as_o man_n in_o tangle_a shall_v i_o say_v nay_o perplex_a and_o distract_v not_o know_v what_o to_o do_v or_o whither_o to_o fly_v or_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v they_o in_o this_o great_a business_n of_o discern_v and_o admit_v scripture_n and_o sure_o the_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o misery_n arise_v from_o themselves_o alone_o perditio_fw-la tua_fw-la ex_fw-la te_fw-la it_o be_v speak_v of_o israells_n transgression_n but_o never_o more_o true_o verify_v they_o of_o heretical_a innovation_n 13._o for_o that_o these_o miserable_a deceive_v and_o deceive_a soul_n leave_v the_o high_a road_n of_o the_o church_n prescription_n can_v never_o possible_o attain_v unto_o any_o infallible_a direction_n one_o follow_v one_o thing_n and_o another_o another_o and_o that_o in_o this_o main_a point_n of_o the_o scripture_n importance_n quot_fw-la capita_fw-la tot_fw-la sententia_fw-la every_o man_n will_v be_v a_o chooser_n every_o one_o will_v show_v himself_o a_o heretic_n whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o god_n word_n be_v wretched_o abuse_v blaspheme_v reject_v scripture_n by_o some_o rend_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n by_o other_o and_o that_o which_o on_o god_n his_o part_n be_v ordain_v and_o prepare_v for_o they_o to_o be_v a_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n become_v by_o their_o misusage_n of_o it_o a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n and_o to_o speak_v all_o in_o a_o word_n through_o the_o fault_n of_o their_o own_o perverse_a will_n concur_v and_o god_n his_o most_o righteous_a judgement_n follow_v they_o hard_o at_o the_o heel_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o 16._o that_o word_n which_o be_v give_v as_o a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n to_o direct_v and_o lighten_v they_o into_o all_o verity_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o pillar_n of_o smoke_n so_o darken_v and_o infatuate_a their_o understanding_n that_o they_o rush_v headlong_o into_o all_o kind_n of_o heresy_n 31._o this_o be_v well_o peceive_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n according_a to_o that_o notable_a apprehension_n of_o his_o noble_a nature_n he_o as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o a_o pious_a zealous_a and_o religious_a disposition_n though_o wrong_o miss_v by_o some_o timeseruing_a and_o statize_v theologue_n who_o be_v somewhat_o to_o near_o unto_o his_o royal_a person_n write_v as_o in_o part_n before_o you_o have_v hear_v concern_v the_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n as_o follow_v as_o for_o the_o scripture_n no_o man_n doubt_v i_o will_v 36._o believe_v they_o but_o even_o for_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la i_o hold_v they_o in_o the_o same_o account_n that_o the_o ancient_n do_v they_o be_v still_o print_v and_o bind_v with_o our_o bibles_n and_o public_o read_v in_o our_o church_n i_o reverence_v they_o as_o write_n of_o holy_a and_o good_a man_n but_o since_o they_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o canon_n we_o account_v they_o to_o be_v secundae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la or_o ordinis_fw-la which_o be_v bellarmine_n own_o distinction_n and_o therefore_o not_o sufficient_a whereupon_o alone_o to_o ground_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n except_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o some_o other_o place_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n thus_o write_v his_o majesty_n out_o of_o a_o good_a meaning_n no_o doubt_n and_o therefore_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o so_o virtuous_a and_o religious_a a_o hart_n shall_v err_v or_o conceit_n amiss_o but_o who_o shall_v determine_v whether_o these_o scripture_n here_o call_v apocrypha_fw-la which_o be_v those_o of_o the_o second_o order_n before_o mention_v be_v canonical_a scripture_n or_o not_o herely_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o question_n his_o majesty_n here_o upon_o the_o suggestion_n of_o his_o domestical_a minister_n of_o england_n say_v no_o but_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christendom_n say_v yea_o as_o do_v also_o the_o present_a and_o her_o judgement_n be_v in_o this_o case_n above_o all_o earthly_a authority_n be_v to_o strike_v the_o stroke_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n let_v the_o word_n of_o my_o sovereign_n in_o all_o otherthing_n stand_v as_o the_o strong_a mountain_n that_o may_v not_o be_v remove_v and_o as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n which_o can_v never_o be_v alter_v only_o let_v not_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n be_v displease_v with_o his_o servant_n and_o 15._o subject_a in_o this_o if_o his_o word_n may_v not_o stand_v but_o must_v of_o necessity_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n as_o be_v countermand_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o can_v nor_o will_v not_o be_v disauthorize_v by_o the_o word_n of_o any_o mortal_a man_n 32._o it_o be_v suggest_v to_o his_o majesty_n but_o sinister_a be_v the_o information_n that_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 4._o hold_v the_o former_a distinction_n of_o secundae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la or_o ordinis_fw-la and_o that_o in_o his_o majesty_n sense_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o so_o in_o the_o sense_n that_o here_o be_v set_v down_o by_o his_o majesty_n to_o wit_n that_o this_o second_o order_n of_o book_n be_v of_o less_o authority_n than_o the_o first_o for_o albeit_o bellarmine_n do_v as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v divide_v all_o the_o book_n that_o be_v in_o the_o bible_n into_o three_o rank_n or_o order_n first_o into_o such_o as_o be_v never_o call_v in_o question_n by_o any_o catholic_a man_n second_o into_o such_o as_o notwithstanding_o sometime_o have_v be_v doubt_v of_o by_o some_o yet_o be_v afterward_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n and_o three_o and_o last_o into_o apocrypha_fw-la scripture_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o either_o call_v those_o book_n of_o the_o second_o order_n apocrypha_fw-la or_o secundae_fw-la lectionis_fw-la as_o here_o be_v set_v down_o nor_o yet_o secundi_fw-la ordinis_fw-la in_o his_o majesty_n sense_n as_o though_o they_o be_v less_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o of_o less_o authority_n than_o those_o of_o the_o first_o rank_n but_o rather_o he_o aver_v the_o quite_o contrary_a that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o authority_n and_o therefore_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o suggest_v this_o place_n of_o bellarmine_n unto_o his_o majesty_n he_o deal_v not_o well_o and_o sincere_o therein_o with_o his_o prince_n and_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o conscience_n and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o a_o subject_n towards_o his_o sovereign_n to_o acknowledge_v his_o error_n be_v it_o of_o malice_n or_o of_o ignorance_n commit_v and_o humble_o prostrate_a upon_o his_o knee_n to_o crave_v pardon_n for_o this_o abuse_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o ever_o after_o to_o beware_v how_o he_o presume_v to_o whisper_v any_o such_o untruth_n palpable_a and_o notorious_a falsehood_n into_o the_o ear_n of_o his_o dread_a lord_n and_o king_n 33._o but_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o point_n of_o deny_v the_o infallible_a authority_n and_o irrefragable_a credit_n of_o any_o the_o least_o book_n part_n or_o parcel_n of_o
scripture_n be_v so_o heinous_a and_o temerarious_a a_o sin_n as_o before_o we_o have_v touch_v yea_o and_o that_o commit_v against_o the_o bless_a spirit_n that_o breathe_v they_o all_o and_o stream_v these_o pure_a water_n of_o life_n from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o live_n and_o life-giving_a fountain_n let_v we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o timore_fw-la &_o tremore_fw-la even_o with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a since_o the_o horror_n of_o the_o sin_n commit_v require_v this_o at_o our_o hand_n examine_v a_o little_a in_o what_o a_o dangerous_a nay_o damnable_a state_n the_o protestant_n of_o our_o day_n do_v stand_v in_o about_o their_o disauthorize_v of_o scripture_n not_o in_o blot_v out_o one_o book_n alone_o but_o in_o wipe_v out_o many_o together_o from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sincere_a canon_n and_o let_v we_o further_o consider_v in_o what_o a_o gaze_n and_o maze_n they_o stand_v be_v uncertain_a of_o their_o ground_n also_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v hold_v or_o determine_v after_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o sure_a and_o stable-staying_a anchor_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o this_o behalf_n 34._o as_o for_o example_n the_o catholic_n do_v believe_v all_o ago_o those_o book_n before_o mention_v which_o be_v secundi_fw-la ordinis_fw-la in_o bellarmine_n both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o church_n for_o that_o she_o in_o her_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v admit_v the_o same_o for_o such_o at_o least_o wise_a since_o the_o 47._o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v enact_v wherein_o s._n augustine_n himself_o be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o say_a canon_n which_o canon_n aver_v they_o to_o be_v book_n of_o true_a canonical_a scripture_n among_o which_o for_o example_n go_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o of_o this_o my_o purpose_n be_v at_o this_o present_a to_o make_v some_o particular_a consideration_n for_o that_o the_o time_n within_o who_o limyt_n i_o be_o strait_v will_v not_o easy_o permit_v i_o to_o treat_v of_o all_o 35._o this_o epistle_n than_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o catholic_n to_o be_v a_o true_a part_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o write_v by_o s._n paul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n for_o that_o it_o be_v so_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n as_o namely_o in_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n the_o 59_o canon_n and_o after_o that_o again_o in_o the_o three_o council_n brew_v of_o carthage_n before_o mention_v and_o cite_v in_o diverse_a other_o counsel_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o first_o nicene_n who_o authority_n his_o majesty_n of_o england_n offer_v to_o stand_v unto_o in_o the_o first_o ephesine_n and_o of_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n in_o all_o the_o grand_a parliament_n of_o the_o world_n general_n counsel_n it_o be_v receive_v and_o acknowledge_v as_o the_o genuine_a epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n but_o now_o in_o these_o our_o unhappy_a time_n matter_n be_v rake_v into_o controversy_n again_o and_o that_o after_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v in_o diverse_a synod_n establish_v the_o thing_n and_o every_o sort_n of_o sectary_n will_v needs_o adhere_v to_o their_o own_o brainsick_a fancy_n and_o will_v prefer_v their_o own_o private_a opinion_n before_o the_o public_a determination_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o church_n among_o all_o other_o as_o the_o captain_n and_o ringleader_n of_o the_o rest_n upstart_n martin_n luther_n but_o it_o be_v after_o he_o have_v break_v vow_n and_o cloister_n and_o marry_v a_o nun_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o censure_v the_o matter_n in_o his_o prologue_n to_o that_o epistle_n reverse_v as_o erroneous_a the_o grave_n and_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o so_o many_o general_n counsel_n direct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n his_o word_n be_v these_o this_o epistle_n say_v luther_n be_v neither_o write_v by_o s._n paul_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o apostle_n and_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o some_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o evangelicall_a and_o apostolical_a doctrine_n this_o be_v luther_n heady_a and_o giddy_a censure_n of_o this_o admirable_a parcel_n of_o holy_a writ_n will_v any_o man_n hereafter_o so_o desperate_o cast_v away_o himself_o in_o credit_v he_o who_o thus_o discredit_v god_n word_n 36._o with_o luther_n in_o this_o point_n conspire_v all_o the_o learned_a lutheran_n about_o the_o disauthorize_a of_o this_o holy_a writ_n and_o namely_o joannes_n brentius_n in_o his_o confession_n of_o wittenberg_n cap._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la and_o the_o four_o magdeburgian_n good_a fellow_n in_o their_o first_o loud-lying_a century_n the_o 2._o book_n the_o four_o chapter_n col._n 55._o and_o that_o audacious_a and_o impudent_a examyner_n and_o censurer_n of_o all_o the_o learning_n and_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n i_o mean_v martinus_n kemni●ius_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la of_o the_o 4._o session_n of_o that_o famous_a council_n of_o trent_n and_o upon_o this_o these_o man_n adventure_v all_o their_o soul_n will_v any_o man_n suffer_v himself_o any_o long_a to_o be_v deceive_v by_o such_o pure_a reformer_n nay_o rather_o impure_a impostor_n but_o john_n calvin_n the_o next_o succeed_a reformer_n of_o these_o reformer_n be_v to_o begin_v a_o new_a fect_n of_o his_o own_o head_n he_o think_v it_o most_o convenient_a to_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o lutheran_n in_o this_o point_n and_o therefore_o in_o his_o first_o institution_n print_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1554._o cap._n 8._o §_o 216._o he_o prove_v that_o the_o lutheran_n do_v err_v in_o this_o point_n in_o hold_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a epistle_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v write_v by_o s._n paul_n but_o rather_o perhaps_o by_o bannaby_n or_o luke_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o same_o institution_n chap._n 10._o §_o 83._o and_o chap_n 16._o §_o 25._o upon_o which_o scruple_n raise_v by_o catholic_n m._n calvin_n the_o caluinian_a minister_n at_o a_o certain_a conventicle_n of_o they_o hold_v at_o poysy_n in_o france_n in_o the_o year_n 1562._o do_v in_o the_o three_o article_n of_o their_o confession_n set_v down_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n to_o be_v divine_a scripture_n but_o yet_o incerti_fw-la authoris_fw-la they_o leave_v the_o author_n of_o it_o to_o be_v doubtful_a and_o this_o be_v a_o subtle_a trick_n peculiar_a to_o calvin_n his_o invention_n to_o wit_n to_o differ_v from_o other_o protestant_n and_o yet_o not_o full_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n but_o to_o have_v something_o singular_a to_o himself_o as_o you_o see_v in_o this_o controversy_n and_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v in_o many_o other_o 37._o and_o here_o now_o i_o will_v demand_v upon_o what_o warrant_n in_o the_o world_n do_v john_n calvin_n and_o his_o sectary_n contradict_v and_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n in_o this_o point_n certain_a it_o be_v he_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o catholic_n at_o a●l_n and_o it_o seem_v then_o nay_o it_o be_v more_o than_o certain_a he_o follow_v a_o several_a way_n and_o strain_n by_o himself_o and_o have_v no_o ground_n or_o guide_v therein_o but_o his_o own_o will_n judgement_n choice_n and_o election_n 38._o the_o like_a dispute_n i_o may_v propose_v about_o other_o book_n or_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o namely_o concern_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o former_a whereof_o be_v reject_v both_o by_o luther_n and_o all_o the_o forename_a lutheran_n writer_n brentius_n kemnitius_n and_o the_o magdeburgian_o all_o these_o avouch_v it_o to_o be_v no_o scripture_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v assert_v and_o asscuer_v by_o calvin_n and_o the_o caluinist_n for_o genuine_a and_o undoubted_a scripture_n the_o second_o which_o be_v that_o mystical_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n compose_v by_o that_o high-soaring_a and_o egale-winged_n john_n s._n john_n syrname_v the_o divine_a this_o book_n though_o it_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n discredit_v and_o caluinist_n disauthorize_v from_o canon_n by_o luther_n and_o most_o of_o his_o follower_n as_o namely_o by_o brentius_n &_o kemnitius_n in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v yet_o be_v the_o same_o book_n eager_o defend_v against_o they_o by_o calvin_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o good_a reason_n have_v they_o in_o their_o judgement_n for_o it_o forasmuch_o as_o thence_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o demonstrate_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o seven_o hill_v city_n &_o i_o know_v not_o upon_o what_o imagination_n beside_o and_o this_o consideration_n may_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v be_v a_o especial_a motive_n unto_o those_o chief_a lutheran_n the_o magdeburgian_o cause_v they_o to_o forsake_v both_o their_o father_n luther_n and_o their_o lutheran_n brethren_n in_o this_o cause_n and_o to_o
augustine_n sancti_fw-la apostoli_fw-la certam_fw-la regulam_fw-la fidei_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la quam_fw-la secundum_fw-la numerum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la temp_n etc._n etc._n the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v deliver_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n which_o rule_n be_v comprehend_v in_o twelve_o sentence_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o 12._o apostle_n be_v call_v by_o they_o by_o a_o greek_a word_n and_o borrow_a metaphor_n symbolum_n a_o symbol_n or_o collation_n of_o many_o thing_n together_o and_o their_o intention_n as_o be_v before_o intimate_v be_v that_o by_o this_o symbol_n sign_n and_o sum_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la veritas_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticae_fw-la pravitatis_fw-la falsitate_fw-la discernatur_fw-la as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n speak_v of_o his_o golden_a rule_n of_o faith_n deliver_v unto_o he_o from_o all_o his_o ancestor_n that_o haereses_fw-la the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a faith_n and_o verity_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o falsehood_n of_o heretical_a pravity_n this_o have_v our_o ancestor_n leave_v we_o by_o tradition_n and_o for_o the_o first_o in_o stitution_n of_o it_o it_o be_v in_o this_o sort_n as_o the_o history_n of_o antiquity_n the_o very_a life_n of_o memory_n have_v by_o write_v register_v and_o commend_v it_o unto_o us._n 5._o after_o the_o glorious_a visible_a ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o low_a pitch_n and_o vale_n of_o the_o earth_n misery_n into_o the_o high_a top_n of_o heaven_n and_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n eternity_n this_o being_n terminus_fw-la ad_fw-la quem_fw-la aswell_o as_o it_o be_v terminus_fw-la à_fw-la quo_fw-la in_o that_o great_a motion_n of_o heaven_n christ_n incarnation_n and_o man_n redemption_n the_o place_n whither_o he_o ascend_v as_o it_o be_v the_o place_n whence_o he_o descend_v according_a to_o that_o exivi_fw-la à_fw-la patre_fw-la veni_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la relinquo_fw-la mundum_fw-la vado_fw-la ad_fw-la patrem_fw-la i_o say_v after_o this_o ascension_n &_o descension_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o visible_a shape_n of_o fiery_a tongue_n upon_o the_o apostle_n in_o able_v they_o and_o qualify_a they_o with_o the_o tongue_n of_o nation_n for_o the_o convert_n of_o nation_n than_o the_o apostle_n be_v ready_a to_o separate_v themselves_o and_o to_o depart_v into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n they_o do_v compose_v and_o lay_v down_o a_o perfect_a platform_n of_o their_o future_a preach_n and_o other_o believe_v by_o devise_v a_o certain_a square_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o for_o their_o own_o direction_n be_v so_o assist_v with_o the_o inward_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o err_v in_o their_o doctrine_n though_o their_o teach_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v conform_v unto_o these_o head_n as_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n instruction_n and_o premonition_n that_o by_o have_v recourse_n unto_o these_o general_a head_n of_o faith_n commend_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o true_a apostle_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o discern_v and_o avoid_v the_o heretical_a doctrine_n of_o all_o false_a disciple_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n be_v assemble_v together_o and_o meet_v as_o it_o be_v the_o second_o time_n in_o council_n be_v each_o of_o they_o several_o replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o of_o they_o joint_o direct_v by_o the_o self_n same_o never-erring_a spirit_n who_o be_v both_o now_o and_o ever_o in_o such_o assembly_n as_o these_o to_o sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o the_o church_n i_o say_v be_v thus_o prepare_v every_o one_o propose_v as_o he_o believe_v and_o all_o be_v put_v together_o in_o the_o upshot_n do_v make_v the_o shot_n or_o symbol_n of_o a_o brief_a yet_o entire_a methodical_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n include_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n either_o to_o be_v preach_v afterwards_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o their_o disciple_n and_o this_o sum_n do_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o appoint_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n or_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n unto_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v ad_fw-la directionem_fw-la ad_fw-la distinctionem_fw-la both_o for_o a_o direction_n unto_o that_o which_o they_o be_v to_o preach_v and_o other_o be_v to_o believe_v as_o also_o to_o discern_v and_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o misbelieve_a infidel_n 6._o thus_o s._n augustine_n who_o sense_n i_o have_v keep_v though_o i_o have_v somewhat_o dilate_v upon_o his_o word_n relate_v the_o matter_n which_o before_o he_o have_v be_v record_v by_o ruffinus_n temp_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o creed_n so_o that_o s._n augustine_n borrow_v not_o only_a sense_n but_o the_o self_n same_o word_n also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v take_v from_o ruffinus_n and_o further_o the_o say_a ruffinus_n do_v add_v another_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n symbol_n beside_o a_o collation_n or_o contribution_n of_o many_o thing_n unto_o creed_n one_o say_v that_o it_o signify_v also_o a_o sign_n or_o badge_n whereby_o one_o sort_n of_o soldier_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o and_o in_o this_o acception_n also_o of_o the_o word_n it_o consort_v well_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n that_o by_o this_o brief_a sum_n of_o doctrine_n as_o by_o a_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n true_a catholic_a christian_n man_n may_v be_v distinguish_v here_o from_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n since_o after_o death_n there_o be_v such_o a_o external_a distinction_n and_o separation_n to_o be_v make_v and_o for_o this_o purpose_n at_o the_o beginning_n this_o creed_n serve_v but_o afterward_o charity_n &_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o christian_a piety_n decay_v and_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n exceed_o multiply_v upon_o the_o earth_n this_o brief_a and_o plain_a sum_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n against_o infernal_a and_o heretical_a subtlety_n for_o that_o as_o s._n augustine_n before_o have_v well_o observe_v sundry_a sort_n of_o heretic_n presume_v to_o shrewd_a their_o heresy_n under_o the_o article_n of_o this_o creed_n pervert_v also_o the_o meaning_n and_o misunderstand_v aswell_o the_o word_n thereof_o as_o the_o sense_n so_o as_o in_o fine_a the_o bare_a and_o outward_a profession_n of_o believe_v this_o creed_n become_v at_o last_o to_o be_v no_o certain_a argument_n of_o prove_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a catholic_a except_o other_o due_a convince_a circumstance_n concur_v as_o we_o have_v before_o show_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n themselves_o 7._o furthermore_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v joint_o affirm_v and_o express_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v that_o albeit_o the_o word_n be_v few_o and_o brief_a of_o this_o creed_n yet_o be_v they_o so_o substantial_a punctual_a and_o material_a as_o that_o they_o contain_v the_o full_a and_o entire_a sum_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o his_o word_n be_v these_o creed_n quicquid_fw-la praefiguratum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o patriarchis_fw-la quicquid_fw-la denunciatum_fw-la in_o scripture_n quicquid_fw-la praedictum_fw-la in_o prophetis_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la ingeni●o_fw-la vel_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la nato_fw-la etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o be_v prefigure_v in_o the_o patriarch_n whatsoever_o be_v denounce_v in_o the_o scripture_n whatsoever_o be_v foretell_v in_o the_o prophet_n either_o of_o god_n the_o father_n unbegotten_a or_o of_o god_n the_o son_n beget_v or_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o receyve_v any_o sacrament_n or_o of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o resurrection_n all_o this_o be_v brief_o contain_v in_o this_o creed_n so_o that_o the_o observation_n hence_o deduce_v must_v needs_o be_v this_o that_o albeit_o in_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o the_o creed_n many_o thing_n belong_v to_o faith_n be_v not_o literal_a and_o syllabical_o express_v yet_o be_v they_o imply_v comprehend_v and_o intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o namely_o and_o particular_o about_o the_o admit_v of_o sacrament_n of_o their_o nature_n number_n necessity_n efficacy_n manner_n of_o administration_n and_o the_o like_a as_o s._n augustine_n do_v here_o expound_v which_o yet_o in_o the_o word_n be_v not_o express_v but_o be_v lock_v up_o with_o in_o the_o sacred_a breast_n and_o closet_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o safe_a treasury_n there_o to_o be_v expound_v dilate_a amplify_v more_o large_o and_o particular_o unto_o the_o faithful_a as_o either_o the_o church_n necessity_n require_v or_o heretical_a pertinacy_n and_o importunity_n oppugn_v shall_v at_o any_o time_n or_o occasion_n require_v which_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o sound_a commentary_n upon_o the_o creed_n he_o that_o in_o all_o humility_n of_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n submit_v not_o himself_o to_o believe_v &_o obey_v can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o believe_v this_o creed_n notwithstanding_o
creed_n for_o do_v not_o they_o both_o expound_v and_o unfold_v that_o high_a and_o obstruse_a mystery_n of_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n his_o identity_n and_o equality_n of_o substance_n power_n and_o glory_n with_o god_n his_o father_n witness_v those_o word_n add_v and_o use_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a about_o 310._o year_n after_o christ_n deum_fw-la venet._n de_fw-la deo_fw-la lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la deum_fw-la verum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la vero_fw-la genitum_fw-la non_fw-la factum_fw-la consubstantialem_fw-la patri_fw-la god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v be_v consubstantial_a to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n witness_v s._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n that_o be_v make_v by_o he_o in_o rome_n for_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n some_o 15._o year_n after_o that_o again_o wherein_o there_o be_v find_v that_o exact_a manner_n of_o speech_n distinguish_v the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n qualis_fw-la pater_fw-la talis_fw-la filius_fw-la talis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n such_o as_o the_o father_n be_v such_o be_v the_o son_n and_o such_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o he_o set_v down_o more_o particular_o the_o distinctive_a appellation_n and_o peculiar_a propriety_n belong_v unto_o every_o person_n as_o the_o father_n unbegotten_a the_o son_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v asmuch_o as_o if_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o have_v say_v the_o father_n distinguish_v with_o this_o personal_a propriety_n of_o beget_v a_o son_n be_v a_o father_n and_o no_o son_n the_o son_n distinguish_v with_o his_o personal_a propriety_n of_o be_v beget_v be_v a_o son_n and_o not_o a_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n distinguish_v by_o his_o personal_a propriety_n of_o proceed_v be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n &_o neither_o father_n nor_o son_n 14._o by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v the_o exceed_a great_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o determine_v these_o different_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o disclose_v this_o ineffable_a and_o inutterable_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n which_o be_v not_o find_v at_o all_o totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la in_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o scripturian_n heretic_n for_o as_o learned_a hosius_n note_v and_o it_o be_v the_o observation_n of_o s._n ambrose_n against_o one_o only_a article_n of_o our_o saviour_n consubstantiality_n with_o his_o father_n they_o allege_v 50._o place_n of_o scripture_n i_o mean_v the_o arian_n who_o verbo_fw-la do_v bear_v great_a sway_n and_o insinuate_v themselves_o into_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o better_a support_v of_o their_o damnable_a heresy_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v creep_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o our_o king_n at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o uphould_v of_o their_o error_n and_o therefore_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o the_o protestant_n and_o arian_n have_v not_o live_v in_o one_o age_n together_o that_o they_o may_v have_v join_v hand_n each_o one_o with_o another_o who_o do_v so_o near_o resemble_v each_o one_o the_o other_o in_o their_o behaviour_n and_o manner_n of_o proceed_v 15._o well_o then_o we_o see_v that_o the_o former_a mystery_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o trinity_n can_v be_v determine_v by_o no_o other_o power_n and_o authority_n upon_o earth_n then_o by_o that_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o express_a warrant_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v none_o in_o their_o pretence_n for_o many_o of_o these_o word_n that_o be_v now_o use_v and_o frequent_v by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o explication_n of_o these_o creed_n be_v not_o then_o in_o use_n but_o invent_v and_o apply_v afterwad_v by_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o present_a necessity_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o have_v they_o be_v so_o acknowledge_v and_o receive_v ever_o since_o by_o all_o christendom_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o behalf_n determine_v and_o expound_v have_v stand_v inviolable_a and_o such_o as_o have_v not_o admit_v the_o same_o have_v ever_o be_v repute_v and_o account_v for_o wicked_a and_o damn_a heretic_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v with_o attention_n as_o before_o i_o have_v partly_o touch_v in_o general_a that_o albeit_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a represent_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n of_o that_o age_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o make_v any_o new_a article_n of_o belief_n that_o be_v not_o true_a before_o but_o only_o do_v more_o full_o and_o plain_o explain_v and_o declare_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o impudence_n and_o importunity_n of_o heretic_n call_v into_o doubt_n and_o question_n so_o do_v not_o the_o say_a council_n explayne_v all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a person_n for_o they_o leave_v at_o credo_fw-la in_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o there_o break_v of_o not_o unfould_v any_o thing_n particular_o controversy_n touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n about_o which_o there_o be_v afterward_o so_o great_a strife_n and_o contention_n and_o be_v to_o this_o day_n with_o the_o late_a obstinate_a greek_n affirm_v the_o same_o person_n to_o proceed_v only_o from_o the_o father_n &_o not_o from_o the_o son_n but_o leave_v that_o by_o god_n providence_n to_o be_v expound_v afterwards_o by_o other_o counsel_n when_o that_o point_n shall_v be_v call_v into_o question_n and_o so_o it_o be_v so_o that_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a unto_o every_o one_o that_o will_v not_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n against_o the_o clear_a sun_n shine_v of_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v leave_v continual_a power_n in_o the_o church_n to_o explayne_v and_o determine_v with_o authority_n and_o that_o irrefragable_a and_o unresistable_a any_o doubt_n never_o so_o weighty_a about_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o any_o other_o article_n of_o belief_n or_o any_o other_o high_a point_n of_o divine_a mystery_n that_o shall_v arise_v among_o christian_n and_o that_o unto_o the_o world_n last_o end_n &_o every_o one_o under_o pain_n of_o damnable_a obedience_n against_o christ_n spouse_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o director_n thereof_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v and_o captivate_v his_o judgement_n and_o understand_v thereto_o and_o not_o to_o stand_v in_o contention_n against_o the_o same_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o these_o three_o creed_n in_o general_a how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reverence_v now_o let_v we_o descend_v unto_o the_o several_a article_n and_o position_n thereof_o in_o particular_a the_o second_o consideration_n now_o succeed_v our_o second_o consideration_n about_o the_o examine_n of_o certain_a particular_n of_o these_o three_o creed_n creed_n how_o they_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v you_o have_v hear_v before_o how_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v subscribe_v unto_o the_o same_o at_o their_o ordination_n now_o let_v we_o examine_v whether_o this_o english_a clergy_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o subscription_n thereunto_o do_v indeed_o true_o believe_v they_o and_o expound_v they_o in_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n interpretation_n and_o meaning_n as_o the_o general_n counsel_n and_o ancient_a father_n that_o collect_v they_o mean_v they_o as_o they_o do_v persuade_v his_o majesty_n they_o do_v a_o man_n will_v think_v that_o so_o solemn_a a_o oath_n take_v before_o a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o for_o preservation_n of_o religion_n and_o conseruaaion_n of_o the_o integrity_n of_o ancient_a faith_n lay_v down_o in_o ancient_a creed_n and_o general_a counsel_n shall_v religious_o bind_v before_o god_n and_o man_n people_n of_o their_o quality_n and_o condition_n but_o behold_v heresy_n that_o neither_o fear_v god_n nor_o revetence_v man_n observe_v no_o band_n at_o all_o but_o draw_v every_o thing_n to_o every_o man_n particular_a judgement_n and_o censure_v and_o therefore_o it_o do_v little_o avail_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o reverence_n and_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n whilst_o they_o reject_v the_o church_n sense_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o same_o to_o swear_v unto_o they_o in_o word_n by_o subscription_n at_o their_o ordination_n but_o to_o forswear_v they_o in_o deed_n by_o a_o perverse_a and_o sinister_a interpretation_n and_o exposition_n and_o this_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v make_v good_a against_o they_o in_o the_o subsequent_a consideration_n direct_v and_o address_v for_o this_o especial_a purpose_n 17._o first_o than_o it_o be_v set_v down_o and_o denounce_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o s._n athanasius_n read_v every_o sunday_n in_o the_o english_a church_n by_o order_n of_o the_o communion_n book_n that_o whosover_n entire_o do_v not_o believe_v whole_o and_o inviolable_o the_o catholic_a faith_n shall_v without_o doubt_n perish_v everlasting_o by_o which_o catholic_a faith_n he_o understand_v the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o every_o article_n or_o
point_n thereof_o not_o only_o of_o those_o article_n which_o he_o there_o set_v down_o principal_o against_o the_o arian_n and_o other_o heresy_n as_o do_v also_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o that_o otherways_o some_o man_n may_v object_v and_o say_v that_o the_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n the_o commumon_a of_o saint_n which_o s._n athanasius_n mention_v not_o be_v no_o article_n of_o belief_n and_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o the_o faith_n thereof_o especial_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o say_a article_n with_o the_o other_o three_o next_o ensue_v to_o wit_n i_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o life_n everlasting_a together_o with_o the_o five_o article_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n all_o which_o be_v permit_v by_o the_o nicen_n creed_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v a_o heathenish_a absurdity_n to_o imagine_v 18._o s._n athanasius_n then_o as_o also_o that_o ancient_a orthodox_a council_n of_o nice_a albeit_o they_o set_v down_o and_o expound_v those_o article_n in_o their_o creed_n which_o the_o church_n necessity_n instant_o require_v to_o be_v explayn_v in_o those_o time_n against_o the_o heresy_n which_o then_o most_o infest_a and_o trouble_v the_o church_n yet_o be_v they_o joint_o ever_o of_o this_o opinion_n and_o belief_n that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v all_o and_o every_o point_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o firmiter_fw-la fideliterque_fw-la that_o be_v both_o firm_o and_o faithful_o as_o s._n athanasius_n his_o word_n be_v shall_v most_o certain_o be_v damn_v everlasting_o and_o conform_v unto_o this_o i_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n the_o uniform_a consent_a severity_n of_o all_o antiquity_n that_o any_o the_o least_o heresy_n or_o error_n defend_v obstinate_o and_o with_o pertinacity_n against_o the_o church_n be_v it_o but_o one_o sentence_n word_n fillable_n nay_o letter_n be_v sufficient_a to_o cast_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n into_o heretical_a pravity_n and_o diabolical_a novelty_n and_o consequent_o to_o bring_v a_o man_n unto_o everlasting_a perdition_n and_o destruction_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o this_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v by_o the_o unanime_fw-la verdict_n of_o s._n athanasius_n s._n basill_n s._n nazianzen_n s._n hierome_n s._n augustine_n and_o other_o which_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o very_a close_a period_n of_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n direct_v to_o quodvult_a deus_n pronounce_v bold_o and_o denounce_v confident_o against_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n that_o whosoever_o do_v hold_v any_o one_o of_o these_o heresy_n register_v in_o that_o book_n of_o he_o or_o any_o other_o that_o shall_v spring_v up_o afterwards_o he_o can_v be_v a_o catholic_a christian_a and_o consequent_o can_v be_v save_v for_o that_o he_o hould_v not_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n entire_o and_o inviolable_o 19_o and_o now_o to_o descend_v from_o the_o general_a to_o the_o heresy_n special_a and_o to_o make_v just_a proof_n of_o all_o the_o former_a accusation_n and_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n first_o the_o minister_n of_o that_o church_n do_v stiff_o hold_v sundry_a of_o those_o heresy_n which_o s._n augustine_n have_v record_v for_o heresy_n and_o as_o condemn_v of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n in_o that_o book_n of_o his_o before_o cite_v 20._o and_o for_o example_n it_o can_v be_v gainsay_v but_o they_o deny_v all_o external_a sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o the_o heretic_n aerius_n this_o be_v one_o heresy_n and_o a_o capital_a one_o too_o if_o we_o do_v believe_v s._n augustine_n second_o the_o protestant_n fall_v into_o another_o heresy_n of_o aerius_n for_o they_o deny_v statue_n solenniter_fw-la celebranda_fw-la esse_fw-la ieiunia_fw-la sed_fw-la cum_fw-la cuique_fw-la voluerit_fw-la ieiunandum_fw-la ne_fw-la videatur_fw-la esse_fw-la sub_fw-la lege_fw-la that_o solemn_a fast_n appoint_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v but_o that_o every_o man_n shall_v fast_v when_o he_o will_v lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v under_o the_o law_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n out_o of_o epiphanius_n and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o very_a speech_n of_o our_o minister_n &_o preacher_n of_o england_n at_o this_o day_n nay_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o of_o they_o myself_o proceed_v so_o earnest_o in_o their_o rail_a humour_n against_o this_o sacred_a and_o angelical_a abstinence_n that_o they_o have_v not_o stick_v to_o condemn_v the_o holy_a time_n of_o lent_n as_o popish_a and_o superstitious_a tend_v quite_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o man_n health_n and_o bodily_a constitution_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o author_n thereof_o say_v they_o want_v wisdom_n and_o discretion_n for_o institute_v it_o in_o such_o a_o time_n of_o the_o year_n as_o the_o spring_n be_v when_o man_n his_o body_n require_v the_o best_a and_o pure_a nutriment_n 20._o three_o there_o be_v also_o record_v by_o s._n augustine_n haeres_fw-la 69._o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n that_o affirm_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v whole_o corrupt_v and_o perish_v except_o only_o among_o their_o follower_n and_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n to_o avoid_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n utter_v the_o same_o contumelious_a slander_n at_o this_o day_n condemn_v all_o other_o to_o justify_v themselves_o 21._o again_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o jovinianist_n as_o it_o be_v register_v by_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n haeres_fw-la 88_o that_o hold_v the_o equality_n of_o sin_n and_o do_v equal_a marriage_n with_o virginity_n and_o thereupon_o be_v the_o cause_n protestant_n say_v s._n augustine_n that_o diverse_a sacred_a virgin_n consecrate_v to_o god_n by_o the_o holy_a and_o lawful_a vow_n of_o sacred_a single_a life_n leave_v their_o profession_n and_o marry_v and_o be_v not_o this_o also_o practise_v and_o defend_v by_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n do_v they_o not_o deny_v all_o evangelicall_a counsel_n of_o perfection_n delude_v scripture_n and_o reject_v father_n though_o never_o so_o many_o never_o so_o pregnant_a for_o prove_v and_o convince_a of_o this_o witness_v a_o treatise_n late_o publish_v by_o a_o former_a liech_n minister_n of_o your_o church_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o evangelicall_a counsel_n not_o long_o since_o preach_v by_o he_o in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n 22._o i_o pretermit_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o manichee_n that_o deny_v freewill_n and_o of_o the_o novatian_n who_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o priest_n have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o remit_v sin_n all_o which_o ancient_a heresy_n with_o many_o more_o which_o i_o purposely_o omit_v be_v hold_v in_o like_a manner_n in_o some_o degree_n or_o other_o yea_o defend_v with_o great_a resolution_n by_o our_o english_a minister_n they_o can_v be_v account_v to_o believe_v entire_o and_o inviolable_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o creed_n which_o condemn_v all_o these_o for_o heresy_n 23._o and_o furthermore_o if_o beside_o this_o we_o will_v but_o consider_v the_o variety_n and_o multiplicity_n of_o other_o new_a sect_n of_o these_o our_o day_n with_o which_o our_o english_a minister_n do_v participate_v and_o make_v open_a profession_n to_o communicate_v as_o with_o their_o brethren_n we_o shall_v discern_v clear_o that_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o hold_v the_o sincere_a integrity_n of_o one_o only_a faith_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o they_o have_v ever_o hitherto_o admit_v for_o brethren_n and_o man_n of_o one_o faith_n the_o lutheran_n for_o example_n who_o express_o condemn_v they_o for_o heretic_n and_o profess_v in_o the_o open_a ear_n of_o the_o world_n themselves_o to_o dissent_v real_o from_o they_o in_o diverse_a weighty_a and_o capital_a point_n as_o touch_v the_o real_a presence_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n justification_n freewill_n the_o law_n the_o gospel_n and_o many_o other_o more_o of_o like_a nature_n as_o by_o their_o own_o book_n and_o write_n do_v appear_v and_o how_o then_o may_v they_o be_v say_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o s._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n which_o pronounce_v damnation_n against_o all_o such_o as_o do_v not_o faithful_o and_o firm_o hold_v the_o whole_a entire_a catholic_a faith_n without_o any_o violation_n in_o any_o one_o article_n at_o all_o and_o so_o let_v we_o pass_v unto_o the_o two_o other_o creed_n to_o wit_n unto_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nyce_n and_o the_o apostlicall_a 24._o in_o the_o nicene_n creed_n for_o the_o better_a and_o further_a explication_n of_o christ_n his_o godhead_n and_o equality_n with_o his_o father_n against_o the_o arian_n heresy_n there_o
be_v certain_a word_n purposely_o devise_v and_o set_v down_o by_o the_o say_a council_n and_o they_o be_v these_o that_o follow_v deum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la deum_fw-la verum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la vero_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n true_a god_n of_o true_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v be_v of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n by_o all_o which_o word_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o sacred_a council_n be_v not_o only_o to_o prove_v the_o creed_n equality_n of_o godhead_n betwixt_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n most_o blasphemous_o impugn_a and_o deny_v by_o the_o arian_n but_o further_n to_o illustrate_v the_o very_a identity_n of_o essence_n immediate_o sole_o &_o whole_o communicate_v from_o the_o father_n unto_o the_o son_n in_o his_o eternal_a generation_n and_o therefore_o do_v those_o thrice_o bless_a father_n call_v christ_n lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la to_o intimate_v thus_o much_o unto_o our_o understanding_n for_o the_o better_a comprehend_v of_o that_o mystery_n that_o as_o a_o light_n import_v his_o whole_a full_a and_o perfect_a light_n unto_o another_o and_o yet_o retain_v the_o whole_a in_o itself_o even_o so_o in_o that_o mystical_a and_o inscrutable_a generation_n of_o god_n the_o son_n beget_v of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o father_n as_o a_o light_n impart_v unto_o the_o son_n as_o a_o another_o light_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o distinctive_a personal_a substance_n his_o whole_a light_n that_o be_v his_o whole_a entire_a nature_n essence_n substance_n and_o godhead_n without_o section_n division_n motion_n mutation_n or_o alteration_n in_o the_o father_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n nazianzen_n prescribe_v against_o a_o certain_a curious_a heretic_n too_o busy_a in_o this_o point_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cast_v away_o thy_o fluxion_n thy_o division_n and_o section_n let_v the_o generation_n of_o god_n be_v reverence_v with_o silence_n and_o yet_o the_o father_n retain_v the_o whole_a in_o himself_o this_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o speech_n so_o material_o and_o methodical_o set_v down_o by_o this_o great_a council_n and_o that_o doubtless_o by_o the_o immediate_a instinct_n and_o apparent_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n against_o so_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o sacred_a person_n and_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o gentilem_fw-la arian_n be_v m._n john_n calvin_n fall_v into_o the_o old_a vain_a of_o his_o arianize_a humour_n as_o doctor_n hunnius_n prove_v do_v utter_o mislike_v and_o condemn_v and_o presume_v to_o censure_v it_o thus_o impropriè_fw-la ac_fw-la durè_fw-la dictum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la esse_fw-la deum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumen_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v improper_o and_o hardly_o speak_v in_o the_o creed_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v consubstantial_a to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n affirm_v moreover_o christum_fw-la esse_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o himself_o &_o not_o god_n of_o god_n the_o father_n but_o may_v not_o i_o say_v and_o have_v therein_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o bear_v i_o out_o catholicè_fw-la dictum_fw-la à_fw-la patribus_fw-la haereticè_fw-la mutatum_fw-la à_fw-la caluino_n that_o it_o be_v catholick_o speak_v by_o the_o father_n and_o heretical_o change_v by_o john_n calvin_n 25._o and_o though_o here_o his_o disciple_n will_v go_v about_o to_o free_v 19_o their_o master_n by_o urge_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n his_o defence_n for_o he_o in_o a_o certain_a place_n of_o his_o work_n wherein_o he_o excuse_v the_o say_a calvin_n in_o some_o part_n of_o his_o meaning_n and_o sense_n yet_o poor_a and_o miserable_a be_v the_o defence_n for_o that_o the_o cardinal_n express_o condemn_v the_o manner_n of_o calvin_n his_o speech_n as_o heretical_a heretical_a and_o intolerable_o proud_a and_o it_o be_v heretical_a say_v he_o quia_fw-la pugnat_fw-la cum_fw-la scripture_n because_o it_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v intolerable_o proud_a quia_fw-la pugnat_fw-la cum_fw-la concilijs_fw-la cum_fw-la patribus_fw-la it_o impugn_v general_a counsel_n and_o resist_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o all_o pious_a and_o religious_a antiquity_n thus_o the_o cardinal_n to_o who_o i_o remit_v the_o judicious_a reader_n for_o more_o ample_a and_o learned_a proof_n of_o the_o same_o the_o three_o consideration_n our_o three_o &_o last_o consideration_n of_o this_o present_a chapter_n us._n shall_v insist_v upon_o sundry_a article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o particular_a wherein_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n that_o make_v a_o profession_n and_o that_o by_o subscription_n to_o admit_v the_o whole_a creed_n as_o it_o lie_v do_v notwithstanding_o differ_v from_o the_o sense_n interpretation_n and_o exposition_n of_o ancient_a church_n and_o to_o exemplify_v some_o particular_a article_n the_o five_o article_n be_v descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v understand_v literal_o as_o it_o lie_v for_o so_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v literal_o to_o be_v expound_v to_o wit_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o the_o consummation_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o passion_n leave_v his_o body_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n he_o descend_v victorious_o like_o a_o triumphant_a conqueror_n of_o death_n satan_n and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n with_o his_o soul_n into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n show_v and_o exhibit_v himself_o thereby_o a_o conqueror_n of_o death_n and_o deliver_v from_o thence_o diverse_a prisoner_n and_o namely_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n patriarch_n and_o prophet_n who_o ardent_o expect_v his_o come_n to_o open_a unto_o they_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o hymn_n of_o te_fw-la deum_fw-la which_o be_v in_o word_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n when_o thou_o have_v overcome_v the_o sharpness_n of_o death_n thou_o do_v open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o all_o believer_n 27._o thus_o the_o ancient_a church_n understand_v this_o article_n as_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o unamine_fw-la consent_n of_o all_o antiquity_n that_o expound_v it_o so_o for_o first_o the_o four_o council_n hell_n of_o toledo_n cap._n 1._o and_o the_o lateran_n gather_v under_o innocentius_n the_o three_o expound_v the_o article_n so_o as_o appear_z by_o their_o word_n plain_a to_o that_o purpose_n descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la ut_fw-la animas_fw-la quae_fw-la illic_fw-la tenebantur_fw-la erueret_fw-la christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n that_o he_o may_v deliver_v the_o soul_n which_o be_v detain_v there_o 28._o second_o thaddeus_n one_o of_o christ_n 70._o disciple_n who_o as_o he_o live_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o be_v it_o most_o like_a nay_o it_o can_v not_o be_v otherways_o but_o he_o know_v the_o apostolical_a sense_n of_o this_o article_n and_o yet_o he_o as_o eusebius_n record_v deliver_v the_o sense_n thus_o descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la &_o disrupit_fw-la maceriem_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o saeculo_fw-la nemo_fw-la disruperat_fw-la qui_fw-la descendit_fw-la quidem_fw-la solus_fw-la ascendit_fw-la autem_fw-la cum_fw-la grandi_fw-la multitudine_fw-la christ_n descend_v ult._n into_o hell_n &_o break_v down_o the_o partition-wall_n which_o no_o man_n have_v break_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n who_o indeed_o descend_v alone_o but_o ascend_v with_o a_o great_a multitude_n which_o be_v suppose_v then_o have_v you_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o of_o christ_n holy_a disciple_n and_o no_o doubt_n inspire_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o warrant_n of_o this_o doctrine_n 29._o with_o thaddaus_n agree_v ignatius_n another_o great_a saint_n and_o martyr_n that_o live_v immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v conversation_n with_o some_o of_o they_o descendit_fw-la solus_fw-la say_v trallian_n the_o same_o father_n ascendit_fw-la cum_fw-la grandi_fw-la multitudine_fw-la christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n alone_o but_o he_o ascend_v with_o a_o great_a multitude_n with_o these_o two_o so_o ancient_a so_o apostolical_a man_n accord_v justinus_n martyr_n a_o ancient_a and_o renown_a author_n in_o the_o self_n same_o age_n next_o after_o the_o apostle_n who_o in_o his_o conference_n or_o dispute_v cum_fw-la triphone_n judaeo_n for_o so_o be_v his_o dialogue_n entitle_v complain_v of_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o raze_v forth_o the_o testimony_n of_o hieremy_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o descend_v to_o hell_n ut_fw-la liberaret_fw-la mortuos_fw-la suos_fw-la that_o he_o may_v deliver_v his_o dead_a thence_o 30._o and_o now_o with_o these_o three_o do_v all_o antiquity_n consent_n to_o wit_n s._n irenaeus_n in_o his_o five_o book_n towards_o the_o end_n clemens_n lib._n 6._o stromatum_fw-la origen_n in_o his_o 15._o homily_n upon_o genesis_n his_o
ecclesiastical_a power_n piety_n purity_n sanctity_n &_o the_o rest_n i_o will_v ask_v first_o how_o this_o so_o visible_a a_o church_n so_o conspicuous_a for_o majesty_n so_o illustrious_a for_o sanctity_n err_v so_o adorn_v and_o beautify_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o heavenly_a grace_n and_o eclestiall_a verity_n shall_v or_o can_v afterward_o grow_v to_o be_v invisible_a be_v spoil_v of_o her_o dignity_n bereave_v of_o her_o authority_n be_v rob_v of_o her_o sanctity_n and_o loose_v all_o her_o grace_n and_o verity_n or_o how_o of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v it_o possible_a that_o she_o shall_v become_v the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n protestant_n principle_n may_v imagine_v this_o but_o this_o over_o throw_v the_o very_a principle_n of_o all_o christian_a religion_n for_o how_o can_v the_o late_a be_v preserve_v inviolable_o if_o the_o former_a be_v so_o unstable_a or_o from_o who_o can_v we_o suck_v the_o pure_a milk_n of_o christian_a religion_n or_o receive_v the_o strong_a food_n of_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o divinity_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o mother_n learning_n wisdom_n and_o tradition_n and_o now_o to_o follow_v this_o heathenish_a and_o irreligious_a principle_n of_o the_o protestant_n a_o little_a further_o if_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v the_o former_a mention_v visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o these_o general_a counsel_n if_o this_o i_o say_v have_v thus_o fall_v by_o false_a doctrine_n as_o the_o protestant_n imagine_v than_o this_o apostasy_n and_o defection_n must_v either_o begin_v first_o from_o all_o or_o from_o one_o or_o from_o a_o few_o only_o to_o the_o part_n then_o if_o from_o all_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o so_o great_a a_o body_n nay_o christ_n own_o body_n mystical_a for_o so_o s._n augustine_n call_v it_o found_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n propagate_v by_o the_o mynistery_n of_o the_o apostle_n water_v continual_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o many_o million_o of_o martyr_n &_o disperse_v over_o the_o visible_a face_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o say_v and_o demand_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o this_o church_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v all_o at_o once_o and_o that_o by_o willing_a corruption_n of_o affection_n and_o judgement_n 12._o but_o if_o this_o defection_n vain_o and_o ydle_o suppose_v by_o the_o protestant_n do_v begin_v either_o from_o one_o or_o arise_v from_o a_o few_o private_a man_n contrary_a to_o the_o main_n current_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n and_o tradition_n which_o have_v continue_v and_o lineal_o succeed_v in_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n from_o christ_n time_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n then_o will_v no_o doubt_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n which_o now_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a key_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o by_o censure_v and_o condemn_v archbishop_n abbot_n &_o patriarch_n as_o have_v be_v see_v have_v resist_v &_o several_o punish_v these_o suppose_a noveltye_n and_o new_a fangle_n in_o religion_n and_o true_o albeit_o we_o shall_v set_v aside_o the_o promise_n and_o providence_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n for_o conserve_n this_o his_o church_n which_o he_o have_v buy_v with_o so_o great_a a_o pricc_fw-la as_o his_o own_o precious_a blood_n and_o bring_v unto_o such_o eminent_a greatness_n at_o this_o very_a time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v more_o than_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o his_o ascension_n yet_o in_o all_o humane_a reason_n set_v the_o light_n of_o religion_n apart_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o imagine_v how_o such_o a_o body_n christ_n his_o body_n with_o such_o a_o vigilant_a senate_n and_o head_n over_o it_o shall_v by_o secret_a stealth_n or_o little_a and_o little_a be_v infect_v corrupt_a poison_a and_o consume_v as_o their_o phrase_n be_v with_o popery_n heresy_n superstition_n or_o innovation_n and_o all_o without_o sense_n or_o feeling_n resist_a and_o complain_v or_o any_o record_n leave_v thereof_o in_o author_n of_o antiquity_n and_o yet_o if_o we_o will_v give_v credit_n unto_o the_o protestant_n and_o suffer_v their_o religion_n to_o set_v the_o least_o footing_n in_o the_o church_n we_o must_v against_o all_o sense_n reason_n faith_n and_o religion_n imagine_v and_o believe_v all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o to_o wit_n that_o such_o and_o so_o potent_a a_o body_n so_o fortify_v with_o defence_n by_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o steal_v away_o from_o itself_o and_o from_o god_n also_o as_o that_o it_o be_v lose_v pervert_v corrupt_v conquer_v by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n make_v babylon_n the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n and_o city_n of_o satan_n before_o any_o man_n be_v aware_a of_o it_o and_o be_v not_o these_o position_n of_o protestant_n monstrous_a paradox_n strange_a idea_n &_o chimaera_n which_o no_o man_n of_o perfect_a sense_n can_v believe_v 13._o i_o read_v in_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o be_v enlighten_v with_o so_o great_a a_o measure_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n very_o earnest_a reprehension_n and_o severe_a invective_n against_o the_o absurdity_n of_o these_o imagination_n let_v s._n augustine_n one_o that_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v full_a of_o reverence_n in_o some_o of_o the_o protestant_n mouth_n speak_v for_o all_o illa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la say_v he_o quae_fw-la fuit_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la periji_fw-it hoc_fw-la dicunt_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la 101_o o_o impudentem_fw-la vocem_fw-la illa_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la tu_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la non_fw-la es_fw-la vide_fw-la ne_fw-la tu_fw-la ideo_fw-la non_fw-la sis_fw-la nam_fw-la illa_fw-la erit_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la tu_fw-la non_fw-la sis_fw-la that_o church_n which_o be_v propagate_v and_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n consist_v church_n of_o all_o nation_n as_o now_o at_o the_o time_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v it_o now_o no_o more_o be_v she_o perish_v or_o vanish_v away_o so_o say_v those_o that_o be_v not_o in_o she_o o_o impudent_a voice_n be_v not_o she_o because_o thou_o be_v not_o in_o she_o see_v lest_o therefore_o thou_o be_v not_o for_o she_o will_v be_v though_o thou_o be_v not_o 14._o thus_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o day_n argue_v against_o the_o donatist_n who_o say_v then_o just_a as_o our_o protestant_n do_v now_o when_o they_o be_v press_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a visible_a church_n that_o indeed_o that_o have_v be_v for_o a_o time_n the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o afterwards_o it_o perish_v it_o fail_v and_o fall_v into_o apostasy_n apostatavit_fw-la perijt_fw-la it_o do_v apostatate_n and_o perish_v except_o only_o in_o the_o people_n who_o only_o in_o their_o own_o judgement_n make_v the_o true_a church_n indeed_o 15._o and_o can_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v more_o like_a than_o this_o to_o our_o case_n do_v not_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o donatist_n so_o conspire_v together_o that_o a_o man_n can_v distinguish_v they_o by_o their_o voice_n the_o protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n under_o these_o four_o counsel_n for_o the_o space_n almost_o of_o five_o hundred_o year_n together_o neither_o can_v he_o choose_v but_o confess_v since_o the_o point_n have_v be_v so_o often_o extort_a from_o he_o the_o outward_a lustre_n hierarchy_n government_n and_o authority_n thereof_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v he_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o than_o he_o will_v answer_v with_o the_o donatist_n suit_n &_o non_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o now_o or_o at_o least_o wise_a not_o in_o that_o perfection_n of_o authority_n as_o than_o it_o be_v and_o if_o you_o demand_v of_o he_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o that_o again_o about_o the_o time_n that_o luther_n spring_v up_o he_o will_v not_o stick_v flat_o to_o blaspheme_v with_o the_o same_o donatist_n apostatavit_fw-la perijt_fw-la it_o have_v fall_v into_o apostasy_n it_o have_v perish_v which_o speech_n you_o have_v hear_v s._n augustine_n before_o call_v impudentem_fw-la vocem_fw-la a_o impudent_a voice_n but_o present_o after_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n he_o term_v it_o by_o far_o worse_a epitheton_n as_o blasphemous_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o though_o i_o have_v touch_v before_o yet_o will_v i_o repeat_v it_o here_o again_o for_o the_o better_a impression_n of_o it_o in_o our_o memory_n and_o the_o great_a detestation_n of_o the_o like_a sin_n 16._o hanc_fw-la vocem_fw-la say_v he_o abominabilem_fw-la &_o detestabilem_fw-la praesumptionis_fw-la &_o falsitatis_fw-la plenam_fw-la nulla_fw-la veritate_fw-la suffultam_fw-la nulla_fw-la sapientia_fw-la illuminatam_fw-la nullo_fw-la sale_n conditam_fw-la vanam_fw-la temerariam_fw-la praecipitem_fw-la perniciosamp_fw-mi raevidit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 101._o
psalm_n do_v foresee_v this_o abominable_a and_o detestable_a voice_n of_o some_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a visible_a church_n have_v perish_v and_o fall_v into_o apostasy_n a_o speech_n full_a of_o presumption_n and_o falsehood_n sustain_v with_o no_o truth_n enlighten_v with_o no_o wisdom_n season_v with_o no_o salt_n a_o vain_a temerarious_a headlong_o &_o pernicious_a speech_n so_o s._n augustine_n and_o then_o further_o some_o few_o line_n after_o the_o same_o father_n bring_v in_o the_o say_v visible_a church_n of_o his_o age_n to_o expostulate_v with_o those_o furious_a and_o frantic_a donatist_n in_o this_o manner_n quid_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la nescio_fw-la qui_fw-la recedentes_fw-la à_fw-la i_o murmurant_fw-la contra_fw-la i_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la perditi_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o be_v the_o cause_n i_o know_v not_o why_o certain_a people_n that_o go_v forth_o of_o i_o do_v murmur_n against_o i_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o certain_a lose_a fellow_n do_v contend_v and_o say_v that_o i_o be_o perish_v for_o this_o be_v their_o say_n that_o i_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o be_o not_o now_o etc._n etc._n the_o scripture_n say_v they_o have_v be_v fulfil_v for_o that_o all_o nation_n have_v believe_v but_o the_o church_n have_v apostate_v and_o perish_v throughout_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n when_o we_o urge_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o ●0_n consummation_n of_o the_o world_n here_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o the_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o that_o he_o do_v foresee_v that_o they_o the_o faction_n of_o donatus_n shall_v arise_v and_o continue_v the_o true_a church_n upon_o earth_n so._n s._n augustine_n of_o and_o to_o the_o donatist_n and_o sure_o nothing_o can_v occur_v and_o be_v represent_v unto_o our_o understanding_n more_o conform_a and_o answerable_a unto_o the_o sense_n judgement_n voice_n agreement_n and_o speech_n of_o the_o sectary_n of_o these_o our_o time_n concern_v their_o false_a imputation_n and_o most_o unjust_a calumniation_n against_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n 17._o now_o if_o this_o grave_n and_o holy_a father_n s._n augustine_n one_o of_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o latyn_a church_n in_o his_o day_n speak_v in_o the_o voice_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o say_v universal_a catholic_a sectary_n church_n in_o his_o age_n do_v so_o grievous_o and_o dreadful_o censure_v this_o speech_n and_o blasphemous_a slander_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n so_o trivial_a and_o familiar_a unto_o protestant_n now_o adays_o as_o that_o he_o call_v it_o impudent_a abominable_a detestable_a presumptuous_a false_a foolish_a rash_a temeratious_a and_o pernicious_a as_o you_o have_v hear_v if_o he_o condemn_v even_o to_o the_o lowermost_a pit_n of_o hell_n all_o those_o that_o frequent_a the_o same_o call_z and_o account_v they_o for_o perditos_fw-la lose_v and_o damn_a people_n recedentes_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la apostate_v from_o the_o church_n upon_o a_o false_a surmise_n of_o their_o own_o foolish_a fancy_n suppose_v that_o the_o church_n itself_o have_v apostate_v or_o may_v fall_v into_o apostasy_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o protestant_n that_o do_v the_o same_o and_o stand_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n 18._o but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v reply_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v say_v not_o that_o the_o visible_a church_n can_v apostate_n or_o perish_v but_o that_o it_o have_v not_o so_o do_v and_o fall_v away_o in_o his_o time_n when_o the_o donatist_n do_v false_o impute_v the_o same_o unto_o it_o but_o that_o it_o may_v err_v and_o fall_v away_o from_o truth_n in_o time_n to_o come_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o deny_v 19_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o albeit_o s._n augustine_n totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la do_v not_o say_v in_o so_o many_o word_n the_o church_n in_o time_n to_o come_v may_v not_o apostatate_v yet_o in_o pure_a force_n of_o argument_n and_o true_a substance_n of_o matter_n he_o do_v affirm_v it_o in_o that_o he_o allege_v against_o the_o donatist_n and_o urge_v to_o convince_v they_o the_o very_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n make_v unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o in_o their_o person_n unto_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o ecce_fw-la ego_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la sum_fw-la usque_fw-la in_o consummationem_fw-la saeculi_fw-la behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n which_o promise_n hold_v for_o all_o time_n in_o s._n augustine_n his_o judgement_n even_o until_o the_o world_n general_a consummation_n and_o therefore_o the_o same_o father_n in_o another_o place_n write_v upon_o another_o psalm_n have_v first_o show_v how_o the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n he_o further_o add_v sedfortè_fw-la ista_fw-la civitas_fw-la quae_fw-la mundum_fw-la tenuit_fw-la universum_fw-la aliquando_fw-la evertetur_fw-la absit_fw-la deus_fw-la enim_fw-la fundavit_fw-la eam_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la si_fw-mi ergo_fw-la deus_fw-la fundavit_fw-la 47._o eam_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la quid_fw-la time_n ne_fw-la cadat_fw-la but_o happy_o this_o city_n that_o have_v possess_v the_o whole_a world_n shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v be_v overthrow_v god_n forbid_v for_o god_n have_v found_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v if_o therefore_o god_n have_v found_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o why_o do_v thou_o fear_v lest_o this_o foundation_n may_v fall_v which_o very_o point_n s._n augustine_n repeat_v again_o in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la and_o the_o five_o chapter_n to_o show_v his_o constant_a and_o unuariable_a resolution_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n 20._o and_o here_o i_o may_v allege_v father_n upon_o father_n greek_n upon_o latin_a and_o produce_v so_o many_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a worthy_n and_o ancient_a father_n as_o may_v suffice_v to_o fill_v a_o large_a volume_n and_o all_o of_o they_o tend_v direct_o to_o apostatate_v this_o effect_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n plant_v by_o our_o saviour_n he_o be_v the_o foundation_n stone_n and_o by_o his_o apostle_n and_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n shall_v never_o perish_v or_o apostatate_n from_o christ_n by_o any_o the_o least_o damnable_a error_n or_o heresy_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n &_o christ_n his_o second_o come_v unto_o judgement_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o they_o do_v all_o of_o they_o allege_v and_o bring_v many_o pregnant_a and_o evident_a place_n of_o scripture_n 21._o as_o for_o example_n these_o two_o here_o urge_v by_o s._n augustine_n as_o also_o that_o plain_a text_n utter_v by_o way_n of_o promise_n unto_o his_o disciple_n matth._n 16._o by_o our_o saviour_n porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la non_fw-la praevalebunt_fw-la adversus_fw-la eam_fw-la the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o this_o church_n &_o on_o this_o place_n s._n chrysostome_n dilate_v himself_o much_o as_o be_v by_o occasion_n treat_v upon_o the_o 148._o psalm_n and_o in_o a_o homily_n make_v at_o that_o time_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v expel_v from_o constantinople_n he_o infer_v these_o word_n upon_o that_o place_n quòd_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la credis_fw-la verbo_fw-la &_o rebus_fw-la ipsis_fw-la operibus_fw-la crede_fw-la if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v christ_n word_n the_o thing_n themselves_o here_o speak_v believe_v his_o work_n how_o many_o tyrant_n have_v go_v about_o to_o impugn_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n where_o be_v they_o that_o go_v about_o these_o thing_n quomodo_fw-la impurissime_fw-la diabole_fw-la ecclesiante_fw-la putas_fw-la posse_fw-la deijcere_fw-la how_o do_v thou_o think_v thou_o most_o impure_a devil_n that_o thou_o can_v overthrow_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n which_o demand_v this_o bless_a father_n will_v never_o have_v urge_v unto_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n if_o the_o devil_n may_v have_v reply_v that_o in_o time_n to_o come_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v it_o by_o sow_v the_o tare_n of_o ignorance_n error_n and_o heresy_n in_o it_o and_o now_o that_o s._n chrysostome_n mean_v of_o the_o external_a visible_a church_n it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a by_o the_o instance_n that_o he_o bring_v of_o the_o horrible_a and_o inhuman_a persecution_n raise_v and_o stir_v up_o by_o infidel_n and_o heretical_a emperor_n against_o the_o same_o most_o holy_a church_n 22._o and_o s._n cyprian_n that_o ancient_a and_o renown_a martyr_n eccles._n treat_v of_o this_o argument_n sound_v forth_o this_o eulogy_n in_o praise_n of_o the_o church_n adulterari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la sponsa_fw-la christi_fw-la incorruptaest_n pudica_fw-la est_fw-la domum_fw-la unam_fw-la novit_fw-la unius_fw-la cubiculi_fw-la sanctitatem_fw-la casto_fw-la pudore_fw-la custodit_fw-la the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v adulterate_v she_o be_v unspotted_a she_o be_v chaste_a she_o know_v one_o house_n she_o keep_v the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o chamber_n one_o bed_n and_o that_o
with_o a_o chaste_a shamefastness_n and_o love_n so_o s._n cyprian_n in_o that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o his_o deunitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la which_o tract_n alone_o though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a short_a one_o yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o be_v the_o bane_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o to_o keep_v any_o man_n desirous_a of_o truth_n within_o the_o bosom_n of_o catholic_a unity_n 23._o with_o s._n cyprian_n agree_v s._n hilary_n write_v to_o the_o church_n same_o effect_n in_o express_a word_n affirm_v hoc_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la proprium_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la tum_fw-la uincat_fw-la cum_fw-la laeditur_fw-la tum_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la cum_fw-la arguitur_fw-la tum_fw-la obtmeat_n cum_fw-la deseritur_fw-la this_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o the_o church_n that_o when_o she_o be_v hurt_v by_o persecution_n than_o she_o win_v and_o overcom_v when_o she_o be_v reprehend_v by_o heretic_n then_o be_v she_o perceive_v that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o she_o be_v misconceive_v she_o make_v herself_o in_o her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v better_o understand_v by_o declaration_n of_o matter_n call_v into_o question_n when_o she_o be_v forsake_v either_o by_o rebellious_a child_n that_o go_v out_o from_o she_o or_o by_o god_n permission_n exercise_v she_o by_o tribulation_n then_o do_v she_o obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o glorious_o triumph_v so_o as_o here_o you_o see_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o the_o church_n of_o their_o time_n but_o of_o all_o other_o ensue_a age_n that_o it_o can_v perish_v or_o be_v corrupt_v and_o with_o these_o agree_v s._n ambrose_n say_v haec_fw-la ergo_fw-la navis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la si_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la saeculum_fw-la istud_fw-la tamquam_fw-la aliquod_fw-la pelagus_fw-la sortitur_fw-la insestum_fw-la numquam_fw-la eliditur_fw-la ad_fw-la saxum_fw-la numquam_fw-la mergitur_fw-la adprofundum_fw-la so_o speak_v s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o salomone_n the_o 4._o chapter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o ship_n therefore_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v toss_v upon_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o world_n as_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o albeit_o it_o do_v daily_o find_v and_o feel_v the_o world_n to_o be_v troublesome_a unto_o it_o as_o a_o certain_a tempestuous_a and_o stormy_a sea_n yet_o do_v it_o never_o dash_v and_o split_v in_o piece_n by_o strike_v against_o any_o rock_n nor_o yet_o be_v it_o ever_o dryven_v and_o drown_v to_o the_o bottom_n all_o which_o privilege_n can_v not_o be_v verify_v of_o the_o say_a church_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v become_v a_o harlot_n or_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n by_o entertain_v any_o damnable_a error_n or_o heresy_n 24._o and_o as_o s._n ambrose_n so_o speak_v s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o isaiah_n his_o word_n be_v these_o super_fw-la petram_fw-la sundatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nulla_fw-la tempestate_fw-la concutitur_fw-la nullo_fw-la turbine_fw-la ventisque_fw-la subvertitur_fw-la the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n be_v sh●uered_v with_o no_o tempest_n be_v overwhelm_v and_o overthrow_v by_o no_o fury_n &_o violence_n of_o wind_n whatsoever_o and_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n in_o another_o place_n put_v a_o real_a distinction_n betwixt_o the_o synogogue_n of_o the_o jew_n &_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o especial_o betwixt_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v unto_o both_o assume_v the_o speech_n of_o christ_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n linquetur_fw-la domus_fw-la vestra_fw-la deserta_fw-la your_o house_n your_o church_n your_o synagogue_n shall_v be_v leave_v desolate_a and_o empty_a unto_o you_o 23._o but_o as_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n say_v he_o aeternam_fw-la habebit_fw-la possessionem_fw-la for_o that_o christ_n promise_v unto_o his_o disciple_n behold_v i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o or_o as_o other_o readins_n have_v it_o i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o same_o speech_n be_v reassume_v and_o reiterated_a by_o he_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o nine_o of_o the_o prophet_n amos_n and_o upon_o the_o 28._o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n 25._o and_o here_o i_o may_v tire_v out_o both_o the_o reader_n and_o myself_o also_o with_o allege_v the_o unamine_fw-la consent_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o their_o day_n can_v never_o perish_v apostatate_n or_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o regard_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n make_v unto_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o contrary_a heretical_a tenant_n be_v a_o common_a receive_a doctrine_n in_o the_o protestant_n school_n in_o this_o last_o &_o worst_a age_n of_o the_o world_n for_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n pro_fw-la aris_fw-la &_o focis_fw-la as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o the_o life_n or_o death_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v no_o less_o stiff_o &_o peremptory_o defend_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o hold_v these_o four_o general_a counsel_n which_o be_v admit_v by_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o church_n and_o parliament_n of_o england_n and_o fourteen_o other_o no_o less_o general_n from_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n to_o the_o last_o of_o trent_n this_o church_n say_v i_o descend_v by_o succession_n of_o christian_a people_n and_o by_o lawful_a and_o ecclesiastical_a ordination_n of_o prelate_n pastor_n and_o bishop_n for_o government_n of_o the_o same_o have_v after_o the_o aforesaid_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o little_a &_o little_a say_v the_o protestant_n apostate_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o true_a doctrine_n and_o have_v leave_v their_o room_n and_o place_n for_o protestant_n to_o enter_v and_o supply_v their_o defect_n and_o this_o be_v just_a like_o the_o allegation_n and_o pretence_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n and_o no_o marvel_n that_o protestant_n and_o donatist_n thus_o conspire_v against_o the_o true_a church_n for_o sure_o the_o right_a of_o the_o donatist_n be_v as_o good_a to_o lay_v claim_n thereunto_o as_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o aught_o that_o i_o can_v see_v to_o the_o contrary_n and_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o my_o first_o consideration_n the_o second_o consideration_n my_o second_o consideration_n concern_v this_o present_a subject_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n receive_v by_o the_o protestant_n lay_v parliament_n as_o be_v already_o premise_v council_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o ecclesiastical_a devise_n and_o invention_n of_o call_v general_a counsel_n and_o this_o spiritual_a authority_n in_o erect_v this_o great_a consistory_n and_o supreme_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o decide_n and_o determine_v of_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n that_o may_v possible_o arise_v therein_o either_o by_o the_o friend_n or_o rather_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v come_v peculiar_o and_o proceed_v original_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n partly_o for_o that_o the_o first_o form_n origin_n and_o practice_n thereof_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o you_o shall_v read_v act._n 15._o according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v former_o note_v and_o partly_o and_o especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o say_v holy_a ghost_n that_o ever-blessed_n and_o never_o err_a spirit_n of_o truth_n testify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o high_a and_o sovereign_a command_a authority_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o first_o counsel_n decree_v visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o why_o i_o say_v this_o be_v so_o have_v the_o protestant_n in_o our_o day_n have_v now_o almost_o have_v a_o full_a age_n since_o their_o defection_n from_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n never_o as_o yet_o call_v a_o general_a council_n among_o themselves_o to_o repair_v their_o own_o breach_n reconcile_v their_o own_o emnity_n determine_v and_o decide_v their_o own_o controversy_n which_o as_o before_o i_o have_v show_v be_v both_o many_o and_o weighty_a implacable_a and_o irreconciliable_a true_o it_o seem_v unto_o i_o that_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a church_n that_o gather_v these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n to_o hold_v all_o in_o one_o union_n and_o communion_n nay_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v lead_v or_o rather_o mislead_v with_o a_o contrary_a spirit_n of_o schism_n heresy_n and_o division_n they_o will_v have_v tread_v in_o the_o steep_v of_o these_o ancient_a father_n and_o have_v imitate_v they_o in_o apply_v the_o sovereign_a remedy_n of_o general_a counsel_n for_o cure_v the_o wound_n of_o their_o own_o homebred_a division_n and_o damnable_a dissension_n at_o least_o wise_a they_o will_v without_o fail_n in_o a_o whole_a age_n have_v call_v some_o one_o forasmuch_o as_o
the_o ancient_a church_n gather_v and_o assemble_v four_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o age_n and_o a_o half_a and_o the_o protestant_a prince_n and_o people_n do_v bind_v and_o border_n near_o together_o then_o do_v the_o christian_n in_o former_a time_n which_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n disperse_v here_o and_o there_o far_o and_o near_o over_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n 27._o if_o reply_n be_v make_v that_o then_o there_o be_v but_o one_o emperor_n to_o afford_v his_o imperial_a consent_n for_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o synod_n &_o now_o since_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n into_o many_o dukedom_n princedom_n kingdom_n and_o free_a state_n there_o be_v many_o particular_a prince_n who_o will_n and_o judgement_n can_v more_o hardly_o be_v agree_v who_o assent_n be_v with_o great_a difficulty_n to_o be_v require_v and_o obtain_v i_o answer_v this_o evasion_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a collusion_n and_o therefore_o must_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o pass_v without_o due_a reprehension_n for_o since_o the_o foresaid_a division_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n into_o several_a kingdom_n and_o state_n many_o general_a council_n have_v be_v call_v and_o gather_v among_o catholic_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v yea_o and_o that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o tumult_n uproar_n and_o garboil_n in_o the_o temporal_a estate_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o this_o a_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n may_v comprehend_v &_o imagine_v to_o have_v byna_n great_a let_v and_o impediment_n unto_o the_o gather_n of_o general_n counsel_n than_o any_o encumbrance_n and_o inconvenience_n that_o the_o protestant_n surmise_n or_o pretend_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v heresy_n and_o schism_n original_o ground_v upon_o proper_a election_n themselves_o private_a invention_n stubborn_a selfwill_n and_o proud_a conceit_a judgement_n together_o with_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o church_n authority_n this_o i_o say_v can_v never_o abide_v that_o exact_a discussion_n which_o a_o general_a council_n do_v require_v for_o how_o can_v the_o protestant_n thus_o divide_v as_o they_o be_v and_o know_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o own_o cause_n endure_v parley_n and_o treaty_n either_o with_o the_o catholic_n who_o they_o account_v adversary_n or_o among_o themselves_o with_o their_o own_o sectary_n 28._o not_o with_o catholic_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o example_n of_o ancient_a heretic_n conden_v in_o these_o 4._o first_o general_n counsel_n to_o wit_n the_o arian_n in_o the_o first_o the_o macedonian_n in_o the_o second_o the_o nestorian_n in_o the_o three_o and_o the_o eutichian_o in_o the_o four_o who_o flee_v what_o they_o can_v those_o counsel_n appeal_n only_o to_o scripture_n whereof_o there_o be_v one_o notable_a example_n among_o many_o other_o in_o the_o last_o of_o these_o four_o counsel_n i_o mean_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o the_o archimandrite_n and_o archereticke_n eutiches_n be_v send_v unto_o with_o notary_n from_o this_o grave_n and_o learned_a council_n to_o yield_v a_o account_n to_o the_o council_n of_o his_o heretical_a opinion_n hold_v of_o one_o only_a nature_n in_o christ_n after_o his_o incarnation_n he_o first_o bethink_v he_o of_o this_o evasion_n to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v agree_v and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n that_o have_v sit_v in_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o that_o of_o ephesus_n but_o this_o be_v but_o mere_a collusion_n for_o thereby_o he_o only_o mean_v most_o crafty_o and_o heretical_o to_o evade_v and_o fly_v both_o the_o other_o two_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n that_o have_v already_o deal_v against_o he_o and_o condemn_v he_o as_o also_o this_o of_o chalcedon_n that_o be_v now_o gather_v against_o he_o to_o hear_v his_o cause_n and_o to_o be_v his_o judge_n 29._o but_o yet_o second_o for_o fear_v that_o he_o may_v yield_v also_o to_o far_o in_o this_o he_o add_v present_o a_o exposition_n say_v si_fw-mi verè_fw-la aliquid_fw-la contingat_fw-la eos_fw-la in_o aliquibus_fw-la dictis_fw-la aut_fw-la falli_fw-la aut_fw-la venet._n errasse_fw-la hoc_fw-la neque_fw-la se_fw-la vette_fw-mi reprehendere_fw-la neque_fw-la subscribere_fw-la solas_fw-la autem_fw-la scripturas_fw-la scrutari_fw-la tamquam_fw-la firmiores_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la expositionibus_fw-la if_o not_o withstand_v it_o have_v happen_v that_o the_o say_v father_n of_o the_o nicen_n and_o ephesine_n counsel_n have_v be_v deceive_v and_o err_v in_o many_o of_o their_o say_n than_o will_v he_o neither_o reprehend_v the_o same_o for_o modesty_n sake_n nor_o yet_o subscribe_v thereunto_o but_o that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n will_v attend_v himself_o whole_o unto_o the_o scripture_n alone_o as_o be_v more_o firm_a and_o sure_a than_o the_o exposition_n of_o any_o father_n whatsoever_o and_o be_v not_o this_o speak_v like_o a_o protestant_n 30._o three_o when_o he_o have_v repeat_v and_o urge_v again_o his_o blasphemous_a heresy_n of_o one_o only_a nature_n in_o christ_n in_o presence_n of_o those_o grave_n and_o reverend_a prelate_n that_o be_v protestant_n send_v by_o the_o whole_a synod_n to_o take_v his_o confession_n and_o further_o when_o he_o have_v read_v unto_o they_o a_o book_n compile_v apologetical_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o heresy_n he_o then_o tell_v they_o open_o and_o plain_o that_o this_o be_v his_o faith_n according_a unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a assertion_n that_o christ_n consist_v of_o two_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a unite_v in_o one_o person_n he_o say_v flat_o neque_fw-la se_fw-la didicisse_fw-la in_o expositionil_n we_o sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la neque_fw-la subscriberevelle_fw-fr sicontigerit_fw-la ab_fw-la aliquo_fw-la ei_fw-la tale_n aliquid_fw-la legi_fw-la quia_fw-la divina_fw-la scripturae_fw-la meliores_fw-la sunt_fw-la patrum_fw-la doctrinis_fw-la that_o he_o have_v neither_o learn_v any_o such_o assertion_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n he_o mean_v the_o bless_a father_n of_o the_o nicene_n and_o ephesine_n counsel_n nor_o yet_o will_v he_o for_o his_o part_n admit_v and_o embrace_v it_o if_o any_o such_o thing_n shall_v happen_v to_o be_v read_v unto_o he_o out_o of_o their_o write_n and_o his_o reason_n be_v that_o which_o be_v so_o common_o urge_v by_o protestant_n for_o that_o the_o divine_a scripture_n be_v better_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o father_n the_o which_o though_o it_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o yet_o be_v his_o meaning_n to_o deceive_v thereby_o as_o you_o see_v think_v by_o this_o fair_a glosle_n &_o goodly_a pretence_n of_o scripture_n to_o have_v avoid_v and_o escape_v the_o tribunal_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o that_o time_n but_o the_o council_n condemn_v his_o opinion_n and_o person_n notwithstanding_o his_o shift_a evasion_n to_o the_o contrary_n 31._o and_o true_o the_o very_a consideration_n of_o this_o particular_a i_o mean_v the_o conformity_n of_o spirit_n in_o this_o old_a heretic_n and_o diverse_a of_o the_o new_a protestant_n that_o cry_v out_o with_o full_a and_o open_a mouth_n to_o have_v all_o thing_n in_o general_n counsel_n try_v by_o scripture_n alone_o leave_v in_o i_o a_o very_a great_a impression_n and_o the_o matter_n itself_o seem_v unto_o i_o very_o considerable_a and_o worthy_a of_o all_o diligent_a attention_n for_o i_o patticuler_o reflect_v upon_o that_o sentence_n of_o calvin_n wherein_o in_o my_o poor_a judgement_n and_o opinion_n i_o right_o compare_v the_o two_o arch-hereticke_n together_o and_o whether_o i_o wrong_v calvin_n let_v his_o own_o word_n witness_v and_o his_o best_a favourite_n 1●_n and_o sectarir_n defend_v their_o master_n from_o speak_v like_o a_o heretic_n i_o mean_v like_o eutiches_n nulla_fw-la say_v he_o nos_fw-la conciliorunt_fw-la patrum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la nomina_fw-la impedire_fw-la debent_fw-la quo_fw-la minùs_fw-la omnes_fw-la omnium_fw-la spirituum_fw-la ad_fw-la divini_fw-la verbi_fw-la regulam_fw-la exigamus_fw-la &_o verbo_fw-la domini_fw-la examinemus_fw-la num_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la sunt_fw-la we_o be_v not_o to_o pass_v for_o counsel_n father_n bishop_n it_o be_v not_o in_o name_v of_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o they_o can_v bar_v we_o from_o examine_v all_o kind_n of_o spirit_n according_a unto_o the_o square_a rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o we_o may_v call_v they_o unto_o account_n &_o sift_v they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no._n so_o far_o he_o 32._o and_o here_o also_o i_o remember_v that_o i_o have_v see_v the_o condition_n require_v by_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n when_o as_o they_o be_v invite_v to_o come_v unto_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n at_o the_o very_a first_o gather_v thereof_o and_o the_o say_a condition_n be_v publish_v in_o a_o several_a book_n which_o do_v bear_v this_o inscription_n causae_fw-la cur_n electores_fw-la principes_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o cause_n why_o the_o elector_n prince_n and_o other_o addict_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n do_v not_o come_v to_o the_o
council_n of_o trent_n causas_fw-la for_o iustifi_n of_o which_o cause_v eight_o condition_n be_v require_v by_o they_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o that_o council_n whereof_o the_o four_o be_v that_o the_o decision_n be_v make_v in_o all_o controversy_n only_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o not_o out_o of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n or_o tradition_n the_o five_o be_v that_o decision_n be_v again_o make_v not_o according_a to_o the_o plurality_n of_o voice_n or_o suffrage_n but_o according_a unto_o the_o norm_a and_o rule_v of_o god_n counsel_n word_n but_o what_o this_o norm_a or_o rule_n be_v they_o expound_v not_o but_o do_v leave_v it_o as_o they_o find_v it_o still_o to_o be_v contend_v about_o whereunto_o if_o we_o adjoine_v two_o other_o condition_n of_o they_o which_o be_v the_o last_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o protestant_a minister_n may_v give_v voice_n equal_o with_o bishop_n in_o decide_v of_o all_o question_n &_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v their_o cause_n yet_o not_o only_o their_o person_n shall_v be_v secure_a but_o their_o cause_n also_o not_o to_o be_v conden_v for_o heresy_n these_o i_o say_v if_o we_o add_v as_o the_o late_a unto_o the_o former_a we_o shall_v plain_o discern_v that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o thought_n to_o stand_v unto_o that_o council_n at_o all_o but_o to_o their_o own_o head_n and_o by_o these_o to_o their_o own_o unreasonable_a condition_n and_o unconscionable_a to_o make_v their_o controversy_n and_o heresy_n endless_a and_o indeterminable_a for_o if_o every_o man_n or_o at_o least_o every_o minister_n have_v authority_n to_o determine_v out_o of_o god_n word_n when_o will_v there_o be_v a_o end_n 33._o and_o here_o you_o see_v the_o small_a or_o rather_o no_o hope_n that_o be_v of_o agreement_n betwixt_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n by_o way_n of_o general_n counsel_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_n reserve_v themselves_o only_a to_o scripture_n for_o the_o decision_n of_o matter_n and_o not_o admit_v general_a counsel_n and_o father_n to_o be_v umpiring_a judge_n of_o the_o sense_n &_o mean_v thereof_o they_o tread_v first_o into_o the_o step_n and_o rake_v into_o the_o sacrilegious_a ash_n of_o all_o former_a ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n even_o for_o this_o very_a point_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n in_o many_o of_o her_o general_a counsel_n and_o second_o by_o such_o condition_n they_o make_v themselves_o sure_a and_o secure_a from_o be_v condemn_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o they_o will_v yield_v thereunto_o and_o the_o self_n same_o fundamental_a reason_n or_o rather_o desperate_a refuge_n and_o evasion_n of_o they_o in_o profane_v and_o abuse_v this_o sacred_a sanctuary_n of_o scripture_n by_o their_o profane_a spirit_n and_o unhallowed_a gloss_n hould_v also_o for_o their_o never_o agree_v among_o themselves_o by_o meeting_n conference_n colloquy_n disputation_n synod_n or_o counsel_n for_o that_o the_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n whether_o zwinglians_n or_o caluinist_n for_o of_o these_o two_o only_o i_o mean_v to_o speak_v at_o this_o time_n stand_v upon_o this_o resolute_a principle_n on_o all_o hand_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v but_o by_o scripture_n and_o then_o each_o one_o interpret_n that_o scripture_n different_o from_o the_o other_o &_o acknowledge_v no_o judge_n on_o neither_o party_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o shall_v ever_o come_v to_o any_o end_n of_o determination_n 34._o and_o this_o will_v evident_o appear_v if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o those_o conventicle_n meeting_n conference_n synod_n counsel_n &_o colloquy_n hold_v betwixt_o these_o reform_a brethren_n for_o the_o space_n of_o threescore_o year_n together_o to_o wit_n from_o the_o year_n 1530._o unto_o the_o year_n 1590._o which_o be_v set_v forth_o &c_n by_o stanislaus_n rescius_fw-la ambassador_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n at_o naples_n upon_o the_o year_n 1596._o &_o which_o do_v amount_v to_o above_o threescore_o synod_n &_o counsel_n &_o meeting_n hold_v at_o smalcaldium_n frankesord_n constance_n tygure_n wittemberge_n berna_n ratisbone_n spire_n norimberge_n lipsia_n worm_n luneburge_n maulnbourne_n petricovia_n varadine_n gratz_n brunswick_n dresda_n alba_n julia_n cracovia_n and_o diverse_a other_o place_n all_o these_o and_o many_o more_o if_o we_o look_v into_o with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n we_o shall_v ever_o find_v meeting_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o conclude_v any_o peace_n in_o religion_n or_o reconcile_n of_o their_o controversy_n by_o these_o synod_n and_o counsel_n as_o that_o they_o depart_v far_o great_a enemy_n and_o more_o disagree_v in_o their_o opinion_n then_o when_o they_o first_o meet_v witness_n their_o departure_n at_o one_o meeting_n of_o they_o above_o mention_a when_o they_o will_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v dextras_fw-la fraternitatis_fw-la nor_o dextras_fw-la humanitatis_fw-la fellowship_n of_o fraternity_n nor_o fellowship_n of_o humanity_n which_o be_v a_o token_n that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o union_n nor_o any_o mean_n leave_v they_o to_o come_v unto_o it_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o example_n and_o precedent_n of_o these_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n that_o determine_v with_o authority_n and_o uniform_a judgement_n the_o controversy_n of_o their_o time_n over_o all_o the_o world_n do_v prejudice_n all_o together_o and_o condemn_v the_o protestant_n of_o our_o age_n and_o do_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o their_o spirit_n or_o religion_n and_o that_o neither_o general_n national_n provincial_a or_o particular_a counsel_n synod_n etc._n or_o meeting_n can_v bring_v themselves_o to_o any_o concord_n or_o agreement_n together_o especial_o division_n and_o dissension_n be_v a_o note_n as_o it_o be_v ascribe_v by_o all_o ancient_a father_n peculiar_a unto_o heretic_n that_o they_o be_v always_o irreconciliable_a and_o divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o my_o second_o consideration_n the_o three_o consideration_n my_o three_o consideration_n be_v that_o by_o read_v these_o counsel_n i_o do_v not_o only_o find_v a_o complete_a hierarchy_n manner_n and_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o those_o former_a ancient_a time_n consist_v of_o bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o prelate_n govern_v the_o say_a church_n conform_a to_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n of_o our_o day_n and_o whole_o different_a from_o the_o protestant_n church_n which_o they_o call_v reform_v though_o in_o my_o judgement_n they_o may_v more_o true_o be_v call_v deform_v in_o that_o they_o have_v take_v away_o all_o such_o hierarchy_n of_o bishop_n except_o only_o a_o small_a glimpse_n thereof_o reserve_v in_o england_n for_o a_o show_n but_o in_o many_o other_o particular_a point_n also_o i_o plain_o perceive_v their_o sense_n opinion_n and_o judgment_n to_o be_v far_o dissonant_n from_o these_o of_o our_o protestant_n whether_o we_o regard_v their_o practice_n for_o conversation_n and_o reformation_n of_o our_o manner_n or_o respect_v their_o doctrine_n for_o instruction_n and_o information_n of_o our_o judgment_n whereof_o god_n assist_v i_o shall_v lay_v forth_o some_o few_o brief_a and_o punctual_a observation_n purposely_o pretermit_v infinite_a other_o that_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o foresay_a four_o general_a counsel_n 36._o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o four_o i_o mean_v nicen_n and_o the_o 3._o canon_n thereof_o these_o word_n represent_v themselves_o unto_o my_o view_n omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la interdixit_fw-la sancta_fw-la synodus_fw-la ut_fw-la neque_fw-la episcopo_fw-la neque_fw-la presbytero_fw-la neque_fw-la diacono_fw-la neque_fw-la ulli_fw-la clericorum_fw-la omnino_fw-la licere_fw-la habere_fw-la secum_fw-la mulierem_fw-la extraneam_fw-la nisi_fw-la fortèmater_fw-la aut_fw-la soror_fw-la aut_fw-la avia_fw-la aut_fw-la amita_fw-la vel_fw-la matertera_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o his_o namque_fw-la personis_fw-la &_o harum_fw-la similibus_fw-la omnis_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la mulieribus_fw-la est_fw-la suspitio_fw-la declinatur_fw-la qui_fw-la aliter_fw-la praeter_fw-la haec_fw-la agitpericlitetur_fw-la de_fw-la clero_fw-la svo_fw-la the_o holy_a synod_n do_v forbid_v by_o all_o mean_n and_o determine_v it_o to_o be_v unlawful_a for_o any_o bishop_n priest_n deacon_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n to_o have_v any_o extern_a woman_n with_o they_o except_o perhaps_o it_o be_v their_o mother_n sister_n grandmother_n or_o aunt_n by_o father_n or_o mother_n side_n for_o in_o these_o all_o suspicion_n that_o may_v arise_v about_o dwell_v with_o woman_n be_v decline_v and_o he_o that_o shall_v do_v contrary_a to_o this_o shall_v lose_v his_o clergy_n thus_o that_o first_o and_o famous_a council_n decree_v ratify_v and_o enact_v for_o the_o angelical_a continency_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o those_o day_n 37._o and_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o holy_a council_n be_v according_a to_o the_o plain_a purport_n of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o canon_n to_o wit_n that_o clergy_n man_n can_v not_o marry_v after_o they_o
ter_z simul_fw-la in_o faciem_fw-la eorum_fw-la &_o aures_fw-la insufflando_fw-la breathe_v three_o time_n one_o after_o a_o other_o on_o their_o face_n and_o ear_n and_o so_o we_o catechise_v consecrate_v and_o cure_v they_o ordain_v that_o they_o live_v a_o great_a while_n in_o our_o church_n and_o hear_v the_o scripture_n and_o then_o we_o do_v baptize_v they_o so_o enact_v that_o ancient_a canon_n conclude_v by_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o bishop_n and_o now_o whether_o this_o antiquity_n be_v more_o observe_v or_o better_o resemble_v by_o the_o protestant_n or_o roman_a church_n i_o leave_v the_o point_n to_o every_o man_n to_o consider_v of_o for_o intend_v brevity_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o prosecute_v matter_n at_o large_a but_o only_o to_o point_v at_o these_o two_o thing_n by_o the_o way_n that_o may_v show_v conformity_n or_o deformity_n between_o that_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o protestant_n or_o catholic_a roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n 44._o out_o of_o the_o three_o council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 42_o 8._o sundry_a weighty_a point_n occur_v and_o represent_v themselves_o worthy_a of_o observation_n albeit_o all_o of_o they_o be_v over_o long_o here_o to_o be_v recite_v and_o first_o i_o remember_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v and_o condemn_v of_o nestorius_n the_o archhereticke_n as_o it_o be_v most_o faithful_o record_v ephesus_n by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o commonitorium_fw-la the_o 42._o chapter_n and_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o by_o he_o who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o council_n and_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v may_v be_v present_a there_o at_o in_o this_o manner_n this_o council_n of_o ephesus_n discuss_v and_o reason_v touch_v the_o establish_n of_o some_o rule_n of_o faith_n lest_o any_o profane_a novelty_n like_v to_o the_o armenian_a treachery_n may_v creep_v into_o this_o council_n all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o priest_n thither_o assemble_v which_o be_v almost_o 200._o conclude_v and_o agree_v upon_o this_o as_o best_a and_o most_o catholic_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o opinion_n and_o judgment_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o before_o the_o council_n such_o father_n as_o have_v be_v either_o martyr_n or_o consessor_n or_o at_o least_o constant_a catholic_a priest_n and_o according_a unto_o their_o joint_a consent_n and_o unamine_fw-la decree_n the_o point_n then_o controvert_v betwixt_o nestorius_n and_o s._n cyrill_n shall_v be_v decide_v and_o final_o determine_v this_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n first_o enact_v and_o according_a unto_o this_o nestorius_n as_o contrary_a to_o catholic_a verity_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o bless_a s._n cyrill_n be_v judge_v consonant_a unto_o antiquity_n so_o vincentius_n and_o now_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o make_v show_v of_o receive_v this_o council_n stand_v to_o this_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n about_o the_o examine_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o father_n enact_v and_o put_v in_o practice_n by_o this_o council_n against_o nestorius_n and_o will_v they_o submit_v all_o their_o judgment_n unto_o the_o assembly_n of_o father_n as_o this_o council_n do_v 45._o my_o second_o observation_n out_o of_o this_o council_n be_v this_o that_o when_o great_a stir_n and_o trouble_n be_v expect_v by_o the_o pious_a and_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinianus_n by_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n of_o all_o sort_n unto_o that_o place_n especial_o many_o favourite_n of_o nestorius_n the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n against_o who_o this_o council_n be_v gather_v it_o seem_v necessary_a unto_o the_o say_a emperor_n to_o send_v thither_o a_o earl_n of_o their_o court_n name_v candidianus_n who_o shall_v represent_v their_o person_n for_o see_v peace_n and_o good_a order_n keep_v but_o yet_o with_o express_a protestation_n that_o it_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o imperat._n nor_o any_o other_o secular_a man_n to_o have_v any_o deal_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o that_o council_n and_o this_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o i_o observe_v which_o now_o follow_v candidianum_fw-la say_v they_o praeclarissimum_fw-la religiosorum_fw-la domesticorum_fw-la comitem_fw-la ad_fw-la sacram_fw-la pestram_fw-la synodum_fw-la abire_fw-la iussimus_fw-la sed_fw-la ea_fw-la lege_fw-la &_o conditione_n ut_fw-la tum_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la &_o controversiis_fw-la quae_fw-la circa_fw-la fidei_fw-la dogmata_fw-la incidunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la quicquam_fw-la common_a habeat_fw-la nefas_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la qui_fw-la sanctissimorum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la numero_fw-la &_o catalogo_fw-la adseriptus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la illum_fw-la ecclesiastitis_fw-la negotijs_fw-la &_o consultationibꝰ_n seize_v immiscere_fw-la we_o have_v command_v the_o most_o honourable_a count_n candidian_n one_o of_o our_o religious_a family_n to_o go_v unto_o your_o holy_a synod_n but_o with_o this_o charge_n and_o condition_n that_o he_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o any_o question_n of_o controversy_n that_o fall_v out_o about_o consultation_n matter_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n to_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n or_o consultation_n so_o those_o two_o emperor_n which_o convince_v sufficient_o that_o they_o hold_v not_o themselves_o for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o inferior_a unto_o bishop_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v this_o council_n admit_v this_o also_o 46._o but_o now_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o religious_a emperor_n disclaim_v from_o this_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n over_o the_o council_n so_o i_o find_v that_o celestinus_fw-la then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o to_o appertain_v unto_o he_o and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n without_o either_o opposition_n or_o contradiction_n grant_v unto_o he_o for_o first_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v present_a himself_o he_o design_v and_o depute_a s._n cyrill_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v his_o substitute_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o letter_n read_z and_o approve_v in_o the_o council_n his_o word_n be_v these_o quamobrem_fw-la nostrae_fw-la sedis_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la 16_o ascita_fw-la nostraque_fw-la vice_n &_o loco_fw-la cum_fw-la potes●tae_fw-la usus_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la non_fw-la absque_fw-la exquisita_fw-la severitate_fw-la sententiam_fw-la exequeris_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o you_o take_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o sea_n upon_o you_o and_o use_v our_o room_n and_o place_n with_o the_o power_n thereto_o belong_v shall_v execute_v with_o punctual_a severity_n the_o sentence_n give_v against_o nestorius_n to_o wit_n of_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n and_o that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o revoke_v his_o heresy_n within_o ten_o day_n after_o this_o our_o admonition_n give_v unto_o he_o that_o you_o present_o provide_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n of_o another_o bishop_n and_o let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o way_n cut_v of_o from_o our_o body_n so_o he_o 47._o thus_o write_v pope_n celestinus_fw-la from_o rome_n where_o he_o have_v hold_v a_o particular_a council_n and_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n in_o the_o west_n before_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v gather_v in_o the_o east_n in_o which_o coucell_n of_o ephesus_n he_o not_o be_v able_a to_o be_v present_a as_o be_v aforesaid_a design_v his_o authority_n to_o s._n cyril_n as_o well_o for_o preside_v in_o the_o same_o council_n as_o also_o for_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n which_o proceed_n of_o celestinus_fw-la be_v recount_v afterward_o again_o by_o the_o say_a council_n and_o approve_v in_o a_o general_a letter_n which_o the_o whole_a council_n write_v unto_o the_o 17_o two_o emperor_n which_o begin_v vestram_fw-la christianissimi_fw-la reges_fw-la etc._n etc._n 48._o but_o this_o be_v confirm_v yet_o further_o for_o that_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n celestinus_fw-la send_v from_o rome_n three_o other_o legate_n to_o join_v with_o s._n cyrill_n in_o that_o legation_n for_o the_o presidence_n of_o the_o council_n whereof_o two_o be_v bishop_n proiectus_fw-la and_o arcadius_n the_o three_o a_o priest_n only_o call_v philip_n who_o always_o be_v admit_v for_o legate_n in_o the_o council_n do_v firm_a &_o subscribe_v their_o name_n after_o s._n cyrill_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o rest_n yea_o when_o the_o two_o bishop-legate_n be_v absent_a from_o the_o council_n upon_o any_o occasion_n this_o philip_n though_o but_o a_o priest_n do_v subscribe_v next_o after_o s._n cyrill_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o tomo_fw-la ephesus_n 2._o cap._n 13._o and_o moreover_o at_o his_o first_o come_v and_o appearance_n in_o the_o council_n he_o use_v this_o speech_n gratias_fw-la agamus_fw-la sanctae_fw-la venerandaeque_fw-la huic_fw-la synodo_fw-la quòd_fw-la literis_fw-la celestini_n sanctissimi_fw-la beatissimique_fw-la
of_o god_n and_o renown_a pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o most_o due_a unto_o they_o for_o the_o expound_v of_o those_o scripture_n as_o he_o do_v never_o urge_v any_o thing_n more_o earnest_o or_o eager_o against_o heretic_n than_o their_o authority_n for_o exposition_n of_o sacred_a writ_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v natural_o hateful_a unto_o they_o who_o be_v inventor_n of_o novelty_n &_o enemy_n to_o antiquity_n &_o false_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n which_o all_o sectary_n be_v as_o be_v define_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o second_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n against_o the_o heretic_n nestorius_n 14._o and_o therefore_o say_v the_o say_a s._n augustine_n unto_o julian_n finem_fw-la the_o pelagian_n heretic_n probavimus_fw-la catholicorum_n authoritate_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la asserunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v prove_v this_o now_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n saint_n that_o do_v affirm_v it_o against_o you_o and_o they_o be_v such_o man_n and_o so_o great_a in_o the_o catholic_n say_v which_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o world_n ut_fw-la vestra_fw-la fragilis_fw-la &_o argutula_fw-la novitas_fw-la solo_fw-la illorum_fw-la conteratur_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la that_o your_o vain_a and_o subtle_a novelty_n be_v crush_v whole_o by_o their_o only_a authority_n and_o then_o again_o auctoritate_fw-la primitus_fw-la eorum_fw-la vestra_fw-la est_fw-la contumacia_fw-la comprimenda_fw-la first_o of_o all_o your_o contumacy_n be_v to_o be_v repress_v or_o beat_v down_o by_o their_o authority_n he_o mean_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a father_n way_n that_o s._n augustine_n take_v with_o they_o though_o all_o these_o heretic_n as_o forerunner_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o cite_v of_o scripture_n as_o fast_o as_o any_o other_o heretic_n 15._o but_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v seek_v out_o by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o so_o do_v his_o word_n flat_o prove_v tun_n ●ypo_fw-la say_v he_o limes_z sanae_fw-la fidei_fw-la defenditur_fw-la quando_fw-la termini_fw-la quos_fw-la posuerunt_fw-la sancti_fw-la patres_fw-la non_fw-la transseruntur_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la imo_fw-la obseruantur_fw-la &_o defensantur_fw-la then_o the_o limit_n of_o sound_n say_v to_o wit_n the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n defend_v by_o we_o when_o we_o do_v not_o change_v and_o alter_v the_o bound_n thereof_o place_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o rather_o do_v observe_v and_o defend_v the_o same_o that_o be_v we_o do_v follow_v their_o interpretation_n and_o ancient_a exposition_n 16._o and_o further_a yet_o reason_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr nuptijs_fw-la &_o concupiscentia_fw-la to_o the_o count_n or_o earl_n valerius_n i_o mean_v concern_v the_o sincere_a exposition_n of_o the_o 29._o ancient_a father_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o novellant_n he_o say_v quid_fw-la dicam_fw-la de_fw-la ipsis_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la litter_n arum_fw-la tractatoribus_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la floruerunt_fw-la quomodo_fw-la haec_fw-la non_fw-la conati_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o alios_fw-la sensus_fw-la vertere_fw-la quoniani_n stabiles_fw-la erant_fw-la in_o antiquissima_fw-la &_o robustissima_fw-la fide_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la novitio_fw-la movebantur_fw-la errore_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o the_o expositor_n themselves_o of_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o have_v flourish_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n how_o they_o never_o attempt_v to_o turn_v these_o place_n allege_v into_o other_o sense_n then_o from_o antiquity_n they_o have_v receive_v they_o for_o that_o they_o be_v most_o firm_a and_o stable_n in_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o strong_a say_v and_o be_v nothing_o move_v with_o late_o hatch_v error_n so_o he_o 17._o and_o for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o have_v allege_v the_o example_n both_o of_o s._n cyprian_n and_o s._n ambrose_n show_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o they_o that_o original_a sin_n be_v in_o infant_n baptism_n and_o that_o for_o remedy_n and_o remove_v thereof_o they_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n with_o the_o old_a ceremony_n of_o exorcism_n and_o exufflation_n the_o pelagian_n heretic_n that_o not_o only_o deny_v but_o scoff_v at_o these_o thing_n call_v the_o use_n thereof_o manicheisme_n be_v answer_v by_o s._n august_n thus_o hosiste_v audiat_fw-la dicere_fw-la manichaeos_n &_o antiquissimam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la traditionem_fw-la isto_fw-la nefario_fw-la crimine_fw-la aspergat_fw-la qua_fw-la exor●izantur_fw-la ut_fw-la dixi_fw-la &_o exufflantur_fw-la paruuli_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v he_o dare_v to_o call_v those_o two_o father_n manichaean_n and_o let_v he_o lay_v the_o same_o wicked_a crime_n of_o manicheisme_n upon_o the_o most_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o tradition_n infant_n as_o before_o i_o have_v say_v be_v exorcize_v and_o breathe_v on_o at_o their_o baptism_n that_o by_o these_o mean_v they_o may_v be_v translate_v from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ibid._n christ._n so_o s._n augustine_n who_o add_v present_o that_o albeit_o he_o be_v scorn_v at_o for_o this_o by_o heretic_n yet_o such_o be_v his_o resolution_n that_o he_o burst_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n follow_v nos_fw-la paratiores_fw-la sumus_fw-la cumistis_fw-la viris_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o huiu●_n fidei_fw-la antiquitate_fw-la frmati_fw-la quaelibet_fw-la maledicta_fw-la &_o contumelas_n perpeti_fw-la quám_fw-la pelagiani_n cuiuslibet_fw-la eloquij_fw-la praedicatione_n laudari_fw-la we_o be_v more_o ready_a say_v he_o with_o these_o father_n and_o with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n root_v in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o this_o say_v to_o suffer_v &_o ceremony_n abide_v all_o kind_n of_o reproach_n and_o contumely_n then_o to_o be_v exalt_v with_o the_o praise_n of_o any_o pelagian_n eloquence_n whatsoever_o and_o do_v not_o this_o fall_n just_a upon_o the_o neck_n of_o all_o our_o modern_a protestant_n do_v they_o not_o scorn_v deride_v and_o jest_n as_o much_o at_o these_o two_o ancient_a ceremony_n of_o exorcism_n &_o exufflation_n as_o ever_o the_o pelagian_n heretic_n do_v 18._o with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v they_o challenge_v s._n augustine_n to_o be_v they_o nay_o be_v not_o pelagius_n and_o his_o rank_n of_o heretic_n fit_a for_o their_o society_n since_o they_o do_v so_o jump_v and_o conspire_v together_o and_o that_o against_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o catholic_n doctor_n nay_o i_o find_v s._n augustine_n to_o go_v yet_o much_o further_o in_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o patronise_a of_o the_o reverend_a rank_n of_o holy_a father_n against_o profane_a heretic_n though_o some_o of_o those_o ancient_a worthy_n who_o he_o commend_v live_v either_o in_o his_o own_o time_n or_o not_o very_o long_o before_o he_o for_o that_o eyt_n their_o doctrine_n against_o julian_n the_o pelagian_n that_o make_v so_o light_a account_n of_o they_o and_o scoff_v at_o they_o he_o expostulate_v thus_o numquid_fw-la iraeneus_n cyprianus_n reti●ius_n pelagiau_n olympius_n hilarius_n gregorius_n basilius_n ambrose_n &_o joannes_n chrysostomus_n de_fw-fr plebe_fw-la a_o fece_n sellulariorum_fw-la sicut_fw-la tullianè_fw-la iocaris_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v iraeneus_n cyprian_n and_o the_o rest_n here_o name_v of_o the_o low_a house_n or_o have_v they_o vulgar_a seat_n in_o your_o parliament_n as_o out_o of_o your_o tullian_n eloquence_n you_o do_v scoff_n be_v they_o raise_v up_o for_o envy_n of_o you_o be_v they_o young_a soldier_n or_o auditory_a scholar_n be_v they_o shipman_n taverner_n host_n cook_n butcher_n be_v they_o dissolute_a young_a man_n make_v of_o apostata_fw-la monk_n &_o c._n who_o you_o by_o your_o scoff_a urbanity_n or_o rather_o vanity_n do_v exagitate_v vilify_v condemn_v and_o contemn_v 19_o thus_o write_v s._n augustine_n that_o holy_a saint_n and_o great_a doctor_n in_o god_n church_n against_o the_o malepert_a sauciness_n of_o that_o heretic_n that_o so_o little_o regard_v and_o so_o base_o account_v of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o have_v allege_v their_o authority_n he_o make_v this_o inference_n of_o honour_n and_o reverence_n on_o their_o behalf_n talibus_fw-la post_fw-la apostolos_fw-la sancta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la plantatoribus_fw-la rigatoribus_fw-la adificatoribus_fw-la pastoribus_fw-la nutritoribus_fw-la crevit_fw-la ideo_fw-la prophanas_fw-la voces_fw-la vestrae_fw-la novitatis_fw-la expavit_fw-la under_o such_o planter_n after_o the_o apostle_n under_o such_o waterer_n builder_n pastor_n and_o nourisher_n as_o these_o be_v and_o be_v have_v the_o church_n grow_v up_o and_o do_v tremble_v at_o the_o profane_a voice_n of_o your_o novelty_n and_o a_o little_a after_o repeat_v again_o for_o honour_n cause_n the_o very_a same_o father_n with_o addition_n only_o of_o two_o more_o of_o his_o time_n to_o wit_n pope_n innocentius_n the_o first_o &_o s._n hierome_n he_o account_v their_o testimony_n and_o of_o such_o other_o as_o hold_v communion_n and_o participation_n with_o they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a speak_a voice_n and_o lively_a oracle_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o
of_o necessity_n make_v the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n if_o ever_o christ_n leave_v behind_o he_o any_o church_n at_o all_o to_o continue_v when_o he_o write_v that_o he_o will_v either_o believe_v they_o or_o at_o least_o wise_a will_v be_v humble_o silent_a and_o not_o condemn_v they_o as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v so_o in_o this_o very_o second_o point_n of_o particular_a father_n i_o find_v it_o thus_o write_v by_o his_o majesty_n 26._o but_o for_o every_o private_a father_n opinion_n say_v he_o it_o bind_v not_o my_o conscience_n more_o than_o bellarmine_n every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n usual_o contradict_v of_o other_o the_o first_o part_n of_o which_o sentence_n to_o wit_n that_o every_o private_a opinion_n of_o every_o father_n bind_v not_o a_o man_n conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o for_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o if_o the_o opinion_n be_v indeed_o private_a then_o be_v it_o not_o true_o catholic_a and_o consequent_o be_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o bind_v no_o man_n 27._o but_o for_o the_o late_a period_n of_o the_o sentence_n be_v whole_o derogatory_n from_o the_o credit_n of_o antiquity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n do_v usual_o contradict_v other_o in_o matter_n concern_v religion_n this_o must_v needs_o presubpose_v to_o have_v some_o favourable_a interpretation_n afford_v it_o to_o free_v it_o from_o open_a injure_v and_o wrong_v of_o the_o father_n and_o so_o my_o hope_n be_v that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o contradiction_n suppose_v to_o be_v a_o among_o the_o father_n be_v only_a diversity_n of_o judgement_n in_o matter_n that_o be_v not_o determinate_o the_o fide_fw-la or_o that_o do_v not_o concern_v any_o article_n of_o belief_n but_o either_o such_o matter_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o may_v without_o breach_n of_o union_n or_o charity_n be_v diverse_o dispute_v of_o among_o catholic_a 2._o man_n or_o else_o when_o diverse_a father_n do_v give_v diverse_a sense_n of_o scripture_n some_o the_o literal_a other_o the_o allegorical_a and_o all_o true_a all_o intend_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o we_o have_v former_o note_v now_o the_o rule_n that_o we_o must_v here_o observe_v concern_v these_o point_n wherein_o consent_n of_o father_n be_v and_o must_v necessary_o be_v have_v be_v that_o which_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n a_o author_n that_o i_o can_v never_o sufficient_o commend_v have_v excellent_o lay_v down_o in_o his_o 37._o chapter_n contra_fw-la haereses_fw-la his_o word_n be_v these_o antiqua_fw-la patrum_fw-la consentio_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la non_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la divinae_fw-la legis_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la sed_fw-la solùm_fw-la in_o fidei_fw-la regula_fw-la magno_fw-la nobis_fw-la study_v &_o investiganda_fw-la &_o sequenda_fw-la est_fw-la the_o ancient_a consent_n of_o holy_a father_n be_v with_o great_a care_n and_o study_v to_o be_v both_o search_v out_o and_o follow_v of_o we_o not_o in_o all_o their_o questioning_n of_o holy_a writ_n but_o only_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 28._o and_o unto_o this_o s._n augustine_n allude_v where_o he_o write_v thus_o alia_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la interse_n aliquando_fw-la etiam_fw-la doctissimi_fw-la atque_fw-la optimi_fw-la regulae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la defensores_fw-la salua_fw-la fidei_fw-la compage_fw-la non_fw-la consonant_n &_o alius_fw-la alio_fw-la de_fw-la una_fw-la re_fw-la melius_fw-la aliquid_fw-la dicit_fw-la &_o veriùs_fw-la there_o be_v 2._o some_o thing_n wherein_o sometime_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o the_o best_a defender_n of_o the_o catholic_n rule_n do_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o but_o one_o speak_v better_a and_o more_o true_o than_o another_o of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n but_o yet_o without_o breach_n of_o the_o link_n of_o faith_n 29._o but_o forasmuch_o as_o particular_a father_n do_v often_o time_n set_v down_o and_o deliver_v the_o public_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o any_o private_a opinion_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o speak_v private_o and_o not_o in_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o they_o mention_v this_o or_o that_o point_n concern_v religion_n some_o certain_a rule_n or_o note_n for_o our_o better_a direction_n and_o faith_n distinction_n must_v be_v set_v down_o and_o the_o sure_a rule_n to_o discern_v how_o far_o forth_o private_a father_n opinion_n aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v or_o may_v bind_v a_o man_n in_o conscience_n be_v for_o a_o man_n to_o consider_v upright_o in_o the_o impartial_a judgement_n betwixt_o god_n and_o his_o own_o conscience_n whether_o that_o opinion_n of_o his_o if_o he_o be_v but_o one_o or_o they_o if_o they_o be_v many_o have_v be_v withstand_v or_o gainsay_v contradict_v or_o impugn_a by_o any_o other_o father_n or_o father_n synod_n or_o council_n provincial_a general_n or_o national_n of_o the_o same_o or_o other_o precedent_n or_o subsequent_a age_n for_o if_o this_o can_v be_v make_v good_a against_o any_o one_o particular_a father_n opinion_n then_o may_v it_o more_o than_o probable_o be_v infer_v that_o forsomuch_o as_o this_o particular_a father_n be_v general_o repute_v for_o a_o catholic_a doctor_n in_o his_o time_n never_o reprehend_v tax_v note_v condemn_v for_o this_o opinion_n as_o false_a doubtful_a or_o erroneous_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v i_o say_v necessary_o infer_v and_o conclude_v that_o that_o very_a opinion_n of_o his_o be_v the_o opinion_n judgement_n and_o doctrine_n also_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o age_n and_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v and_o of_o which_o he_o himself_o be_v then_o a_o father_n and_o doctor_n for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o with_o any_o probability_n imagine_v that_o this_o father_n can_v have_v teach_v this_o opinion_n in_o his_o day_n or_o diwlge_v it_o in_o his_o write_n unto_o posterity_n without_o some_o note_n or_o memory_n of_o controlment_n or_o taxation_n of_o the_o same_o either_o whilst_o he_o live_v or_o after_o his_o death_n 30._o and_o hereby_o it_o follow_v that_o albeit_o this_o doctrine_n shall_v have_v but_o one_o or_o two_o ancient_a father_n that_o do_v express_o mention_v it_o in_o their_o day_n other_o father_n of_o the_o same_o time_n either_o not_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v thereof_o or_o else_o busy_v and_o encumber_v about_o other_o as_o weighty_a point_n yet_o be_v this_o alone_a sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o understand_v that_o in_o their_o day_n that_o mention_v the_o same_o the_o foresaid_a opinion_n of_o that_o father_n or_o father_n be_v hold_v for_o catholic_n doctrine_n &_o throughout_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o that_o otherwise_o without_o all_o doubt_n it_o will_v they_o or_o afterwards_o have_v be_v other_o descry_v &_o censure_v by_o the_o careful_a &_o vigilant_a watchman_n of_o god_n church_n neither_o can_v any_o instance_n as_o i_o imagine_v be_v give_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o that_o from_o the_o very_a first_o infancy_n of_o christianity_n unto_o our_o day_n it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o any_o father_n or_o doctor_n though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o renown_v for_o wit_n and_o learning_n piety_n or_o sanctity_n do_v ever_o begin_v any_o new_a doctrine_n or_o erroneous_a opinion_n different_a from_o the_o catholic_a belief_n but_o that_o present_o the_o same_o be_v except_v against_o by_o other_o and_o this_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a in_o the_o particular_a case_n and_o slip_v of_o tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n lactamius_fw-la and_o other_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o when_o any_o of_o these_o transgress_v the_o ancient_a bound_n innovate_a any_o thing_n from_o the_o receive_v faith_n they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o except_v and_o cry_v out_o against_o note_v &_o tax_v for_o such_o their_o private_a &_o erroneous_a opinion_n as_o dissent_v from_o public_a union_n and_o catholic_n communion_n 31._o neither_o do_v any_o man_n in_o my_o judgement_n explain_v this_o point_n better_o than_o s._n augustine_n himself_o and_o therefore_o as_o i_o serve_v myself_o principal_o of_o he_o in_o the_o precedent_a consideration_n so_o do_v i_o mean_v also_o in_o this_o for_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n when_o many_o father_n do_v agree_v in_o their_o opinion_n against_o one_o or_o few_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o s._n cyprian_n about_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n it_o fall_v out_o the_o great_a part_n be_v there_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o less_o as_o the_o say_a father_n do_v often_o affirm_v so_o notwithstanding_o when_o no_o such_o opposition_n and_o contradiction_n be_v of_o the_o mayor_n part_n s._n augustine_n himself_o make_v high_a and_o singular_a account_n of_o every_o private_a father_n opinion_n as_o namely_o when_o he_o extoll_v the_o authority_n o._n s._n 32._o hilarius_n against_o lulian_n save_v ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la acerrimum_fw-la
desensorem_fw-la venerandum_fw-la quis_fw-la ignorat_fw-la hilarium_fw-la episcopum_fw-la gallum_fw-la who_o be_v ignorant_a or_o who_o do_v not_o know_v that_o earnest_a defendor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n against_o heretic_n venerable_a hilary_n the_o french_a bishop_n 32._o and_o then_o again_o of_o s._n amrbose_n audi_fw-la alium_fw-la excellentem_fw-la dei_fw-la dispensatorem_fw-la quem_fw-la veneror_fw-la ut_fw-la patrem_fw-la in_fw-la christo_fw-la enim_fw-la 2._o jesu_fw-la per_fw-la euangelium_fw-la i_o genuit_fw-la beatum_fw-la loquor_fw-la ambrosium_fw-la harken_v unto_o another_o excellent_a steward_n of_o god_n house_n who_o i_o do_v reverence_n as_o my_o father_n for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n he_o beget_v i_o by_o the_o gospel_n i_o mean_v bless_v s._n ambrose_n and_o then_o of_o a_o three_o also_o to_o wit_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n he_o give_v this_o commendation_n or_o rather_o by_o a_o interrogation_n will_v enforce_v his_o adversary_n unto_o a_o admiration_n of_o this_o great_a saint_n and_o learned_a divine_a a_o tibi_fw-la parua_fw-la in_o uno_fw-la gregorio_n episcoporum_fw-la orientalium_fw-la videtur_fw-la authoritas_fw-la do_v it_o seem_v unto_o thou_o a_o small_a authority_n that_o be_v in_o one_o only_a gregory_n nazianzen_n among_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n and_o then_o follow_v the_o reason_n which_o true_o be_v very_o well_o worth_a the_o mark_v 33._o est_fw-la quidem_fw-la say_v he_o tanta_fw-la persona_fw-la ut_fw-la neque_fw-la ille_fw-la hoc_fw-la nisi_fw-la church_n ex_fw-la fide_fw-la christiana_n omnibus_fw-la notissima_fw-la diceret_fw-la neque_fw-la illi_fw-la eum_fw-la tam_fw-la clarum_fw-la haberent_fw-la atque_fw-la venerandum_fw-la nisi_fw-la hoc_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la dictum_fw-la ex_fw-la regula_fw-la notissimae_fw-la veritatis_fw-la agnoscerent_fw-la he_o be_v true_o so_o great_a a_o person_n as_o neither_o will_v he_o speak_v in_o this_o matter_n as_o he_o do_v but_o out_o of_o the_o most_o know_a manifest_a christian_a faith_n nor_o will_v man_n hold_v he_o for_o so_o excellent_a and_o venerable_a except_o they_o do_v know_v that_o what_o he_o say_v he_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o rule_n of_o most_o know_a truth_n thus_o s._n augustine_n 34._o and_o in_o these_o his_o word_n consist_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o this_o my_o consideration_n about_o private_a father_n to_o wit_n that_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n syrname_v theologus_fw-la the_o divine_a for_o his_o admirable_a and_o profound_a knowledge_n in_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o divinity_n though_o he_o have_v be_v but_o one_o in_o that_o matter_n against_o julian_n as_o he_o be_v not_o but_o accompany_v with_o many_o as_o have_v be_v make_v clear_a in_o the_o former_a consideration_n yet_o so_o great_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o his_o person_n in_o the_o church_n as_o that_o neither_o he_o will_v have_v say_v as_o he_o do_v but_o out_o of_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n nor_o shall_v he_o ever_o have_v be_v hold_v for_o a_o famous_a nor_o venerable_a a_o doctor_n renown_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o that_o the_o church_n be_v sure_a that_o he_o will_v affirm_v nothing_o hold_v nothing_o publish_v nothing_o but_o out_o of_o the_o common_a rule_n and_o infallible_a canon_n of_o the_o most_o know_a truth_n for_o that_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v even_o to_o his_o face_n have_v be_v contradict_v by_o other_o doctor_n and_o father_n his_o equal_n and_o compeer_n that_o live_v with_o he_o or_o ensue_v after_o he_o so_o as_o we_o see_v that_o particular_a father_n say_n and_o opinion_n when_o they_o be_v not_o gaynesay_v by_o other_o or_o reprehend_v or_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o so_o light_o to_o be_v respect_v or_o reject_v as_o protestant_n do_v both_o ordinary_o teach_v and_o practice_v but_o the_o main_a point_n to_o be_v weigh_v and_o consider_v be_v this_o to_o wit_n to_o know_v in_o what_o time_n they_o be_v write_v upon_o what_o occasion_n of_o what_o credit_n or_o authority_n the_o father_n be_v whether_o other_o do_v write_v the_o same_o and_o accord_n with_o he_o whether_o any_o exception_n have_v be_v take_v against_o it_o and_o then_o by_o who_o and_o when_o and_o how_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o church_n either_o as_o iustify_v or_o condemn_v and_o many_o other_o such_o like_a material_a circumstance_n by_o i_o before_o touch_v for_o that_o sometime_o it_o may_v fall_v out_o yea_o and_o often_o time_n do_v as_o now_o we_o have_v in_o part_n show_v and_o may_v do_v much_o more_o at_o large_a that_o particular_a father_n opinion_n and_o assertion_n not_o contradict_v nor_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n agree_v upon_o in_o express_a term_n by_o the_o mayor_n part_n of_o father_n in_o their_o write_n though_o otherwise_o believe_v and_o receive_v by_o they_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n may_v make_v a_o very_a strong_a argument_n that_o the_o church_n do_v then_o believe_v it_o especial_o if_o the_o same_o be_v so_o understand_v also_o by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n follow_v in_o the_o subsequent_a age_n and_o church_n and_o consequent_o it_o may_v bind_v every_o man_n his_o conscience_n to_o give_v more_o credit_n thereunto_o than_o protestant_n incredulity_n will_v allow_v and_o this_o shall_v suffice_v for_o my_o second_o consideration_n the_o three_o consideration_n hitherto_o have_v we_o treat_v of_o the_o father_n show_v first_o what_o credit_n we_o ought_v to_o afford_v &_o yield_v unto_o their_o joint_a consent_n when_o in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n they_o agree_v in_o controversy_n one_o and_o that_o be_v sine_fw-la scrupulo_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la dubitatione_n as_o vincentius_n speak_v without_o any_o further_a question_n contradiction_n or_o opposition_n most_o faithful_o to_o believe_v they_o and_o embrace_v their_o judgement_n as_o the_o lively_a oracle_n of_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a speak_a voice_n of_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o her_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n which_o if_o you_o consider_v it_o well_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o the_o alternative_a allow_v unto_o they_o by_o protestant_n which_o be_v either_o to_o believe_v they_o or_o to_o be_v humble_o silent_a without_o condemn_v they_o as_o though_o the_o protestant_n be_v at_o his_o liberty_n in_o every_o thing_n to_o make_v his_o choice_n which_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n be_v no_o less_o they_o heresy_n and_o as_o though_o the_o renounce_n and_o forsake_v of_o haereses_fw-la they_o let_v it_o be_v promise_v with_o never_o so_o much_o silence_n &_o reverence_n be_v not_o on_o the_o protestant_n part_v a_o sufficient_a condemn_v of_o they_o and_o this_o for_o that_o point_n 36._o there_o remain_v yet_o behind_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_a point_n of_o all_o other_o in_o this_o present_a business_n and_o matter_n we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n to_o be_v handle_v and_o to_o be_v especial_o consider_v of_o which_o be_v this_o to_o wit_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n for_o so_o far_o do_v his_o majesty_n offer_n in_o the_o last_o edition_n of_o this_o his_o english_a premonition_n extend_v itself_o do_v make_v for_o protestant_n or_o for_o we_o which_o point_n though_o to_o discuss_v at_o large_a throughout_o all_o the_o controversy_n will_v both_o require_v and_o fill_v a_o very_a large_a volume_n and_o consequent_o far_o surpass_v the_o bound_n of_o my_o intend_a brevity_n yet_o shall_v jendeavour_v in_o this_o last_o consideration_n to_o give_v a_o sufficient_a glimpse_n of_o the_o truth_n therein_o in_o very_a few_o word_n for_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o will_v stand_v attent_a and_o judge_v according_a unto_o reason_n the_o more_o by_o the_o less_o 37._o for_o first_o in_o general_n it_o may_v be_v here_o see_v by_o that_o which_o his_o majesty_n lay_v forth_o that_o the_o protestant_n do_v deal_v diffidenter_n distrustful_o on_o their_o own_o behalf_n with_o the_o father_n authority_n for_o they_o do_v first_o limit_v their_o year_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o four_o hundred_o in_o the_o first_o english_a edition_n and_o then_o of_o five_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o next_o and_o last_o of_o all_o they_o call_v it_o back_o again_o unto_o four_o hundred_o in_o the_o latin_a edition_n which_o argue_v that_o they_o know_v not_o well_o upon_o what_o ground_n nor_o where_o nor_o when_o they_o stay_v themselves_o be_v still_o afraid_a lest_o that_o they_o grant_v to_o much_o unto_o they_o as_o indeed_o whatsoever_o they_o grant_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v to_o much_o on_o their_o behalf_n since_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o grant_v it_o make_v direct_o against_o they_o which_o will_v not_o be_v if_o their_o friendship_n with_o they_o or_o hope_v in_o they_o be_v confident_a or_o any_o at_o all_o 38._o second_o they_o restrain_v their_o credit_n yet_o more_o when_o they_o do_v not_o promise_v absolute_o to_o believe_v the_o consent_n of_o father_n but_o only_o
they_o promise_v silence_n and_o when_o they_o say_v they_o will_v believe_v the_o father_n of_o those_o first_o age_n when_o with_o one_o unanyme_n consent_n they_o shall_v agree_v upon_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o salvation_n which_o seldom_o fall_v out_o in_o matter_n especial_o now_o in_o controversy_n for_o that_o they_o be_v busy_v in_o other_o matter_n as_o before_o have_v be_v touch_v either_o of_o write_v apologye_n during_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o in_o convert_n and_o instruct_v the_o new_a convert_v christian_n or_o in_o confute_v other_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o rare_a case_n to_o find_v all_o the_o father_n agree_v together_o with_o one_o consent_n except_o it_o be_v in_o a_o general_a council_n and_o to_o determine_v that_o this_o or_o that_o point_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n &_o article_n of_o belief_n 39_o neither_o be_v it_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o purpose_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v so_o for_o that_o our_o principal_a scope_n and_o drift_n be_v to_o seek_v and_o trace_v out_o from_o time_n to_o time_n by_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n in_o every_o age_n where_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n go_v and_o whether_o the_o protestant_n or_o our_o church_n at_o this_o day_n have_v more_o resemblance_n unto_o she_o there_o belief_n be_v diverse_a other_o argument_n and_o probable_a conjecture_n to_o seek_v out_o the_o same_o atlea_v wise_a probable_o then_o only_a article_n of_o belief_n agree_v upon_o by_o unanime_fw-la consent_n as_o for_o example_n sundry_a ceremony_n use_v in_o baptism_n and_o other_o sacrament_n as_o exorcism_n exsufflation_n christen_v and_o the_o like_v mention_v by_o s._n augustine_n and_o by_o diverse_a other_o ancient_a father_n as_o also_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cross_n taper_n candle_n reverence_v of_o holy_a relic_n and_o kneel_v before_o picture_n image_n &_o crucifix_n and_o other_o rite_n testify_v by_o the_o whole_a senate_n of_o christian_a antiquity_n which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o by_o the_o say_a father_n commend_v and_o deliver_v as_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n yet_o these_o be_v practise_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o compare_v to_o the_o custom_n of_o protestant_n and_o we_o in_o our_o church_n will_v easy_o disclose_v which_o of_o the_o two_o they_o or_o we_o do_v more_o imitate_v or_o impugn_v the_o true_a church_n of_o antiquity_n but_o content_v ourselves_o at_o this_o time_n with_o the_o only_o mention_v of_o they_o by_o the_o way_n we_o will_v make_v a_o short_a and_o brief_a passage_n or_o rather_o step_v throughout_o the_o foresay_a four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n limit_v unto_o we_o and_o this_o god_n willing_a we_o will_v do_v not_o by_o cite_v but_o lay_v down_o the_o father_n authority_n themselves_o in_o particular_a for_o it_o will_v be_v over_o long_o as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v but_o rather_o by_o produce_v such_o witness_n who_o be_v of_o most_o credit_n with_o our_o adversary_n can_v be_v well_o mistrust_v or_o discredit_v to_o wit_n the_o magdeburgian_o century_n who_o have_v in_o every_o age_n diligent_o though_o partial_o examine_v the_o same_o and_o how_o substantial_a a_o proof_n this_o be_v of_o catholic_n religion_n by_o the_o very_a confession_n &_o concession_n of_o their_o great_a adversary_n i_o appeal_v for_o judgement_n unto_o the_o discreet_a and_o indifferent_a reader_n the_o first_o age._n 40._o and_o as_o for_o the_o first_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n his_o glorious_a incarnation_n which_o be_v depute_v general_o unto_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n age_n as_o the_o chief_a doctor_n and_o father_n that_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o that_o time_n i_o will_v take_v only_o the_o note_n of_o one_o position_n 4._o or_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o say_v magdeburgians_n do_v gather_v out_o of_o all_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n as_o agree_v upon_o against_o the_o protestant_n by_o the_o teacher_n of_o that_o age_n and_o continue_v ever_o after_o throughout_o all_o subsequent_a age_n and_o this_o be_v concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n common_o call_v the_o eucharist_n which_o point_n the_o ancient_a father_n against_o all_o heretical_a &_o protestantical_a trope_n and_o figure_n do_v prove_v abundant_o out_o of_o the_o ghospel_n themselves_o out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n out_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o that_o first_o age_n &_o ever_o after_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v evident_o contain_v the_o same_o be_v proper_o and_o literal_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v and_o not_o by_o any_o figure_n or_o trope_n as_o the_o zwinglians_n caluinist_n &_o all_o other_o sect_n of_o sacramentary_n do_v faythles_o imagine_v 41._o this_o first_o prescription_n then_o of_o this_o important_a article_n of_o faith_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v find_v to_o be_v for_o we_o against_o presence_n all_o our_o english_a protestant_n aswell_o in_o the_o very_a first_o age_n under_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o in_o all_o other_o successive_a time_n for_o that_o in_o every_o age_n they_o prove_v this_o diligent_o out_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o that_o age_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n his_o true_a body_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n by_o the_o very_a power_n and_o virtue_n of_o christ_n his_o own_o word_n use_v by_o the_o priest_n in_o consecration_n and_o if_o any_o heretic_n demand_v a_o reason_n of_o this_o admirable_a transmutation_n i_o can_v give_v he_o no_o other_o then_o that_o which_o s._n augustine_n give_v in_o the_o like_o miraculous_a case_n it_o be_v in_o his_o three_o epistle_n ad_fw-la volusianum_fw-la and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o will_v suffice_v any_o right_n believe_v christian_a if_o he_o will_v not_o continue_v a_o heretic_n or_o a_o infidel_n hic_fw-la si_fw-la ratio_fw-la quaeritur_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la mirabile_fw-la si_fw-la exemplum_fw-la poscatur_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la singular_a demus_fw-la deum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la posse_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la fateamur_fw-la investigari_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la in_fw-la talibus_fw-la enim_fw-la rebus_fw-la tota_fw-la ratio_fw-la sacti_fw-la est_fw-la potentia_fw-la facientis_fw-la here_o if_o a_o reason_n be_v seek_v for_o it_o be_v not_o wonderful_a if_o a_o example_n be_v demand_v it_o be_v not_o singular_a let_v we_o grant_v that_o god_n can_v do_v some_o thing_n which_o we_o must_v confess_v we_o can_v search_v out_o for_o in_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o be_v the_o whole_a reason_n of_o the_o deed_n be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o doer_n and_o be_v not_o this_o one_o substantial_a point_n of_o popery_n as_o our_o protestant_n brand_v it_o prove_v for_o we_o by_o their_o own_o friend_n 42._o but_o as_o for_o other_o point_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o protestant_n though_o the_o magdeburgian_o will_v not_o willing_o grant_v they_o to_o be_v so_o ancient_a as_o the_o first_o age_n which_o we_o notwithstanding_o do_v prove_v abundant_o in_o handle_v of_o every_o controversy_n yet_o do_v they_o will_v they_o will_v they_o grant_v sundry_a of_o they_o to_o have_v begin_v and_o creep_v in_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o second_o age_n and_o so_o continue_v and_o increase_v in_o number_n in_o the_o three_o four_o five_o and_o six_o when_o all_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n go_v clear_a with_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o such_o as_o be_v chief_a doctor_n and_o father_n for_o their_o learning_n and_o piety_n in_o those_o time_n and_o age_n as_o here_o shall_v appear_v by_o a_o just_a view_n of_o that_o which_o here_o brief_o i_o purpose_v to_o set_v down_o the_o second_o age._n 43._o in_o the_o second_o age_n immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v grant_v the_o very_a principal_a father_n of_o etc._n that_o age_n to_o make_v for_o we_o not_o only_o in_o the_o foresay_a article_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n against_o sacramentary_n but_o also_o in_o sundry_a other_o point_n now_o in_o controversy_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o first_o concern_v freewill_n remain_v in_o man_n after_o his_o will_n fall_n for_o proof_n whereof_o they_o cyte_v s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 72._o contra_fw-la harese_n and_o that_o with_o great_a indignation_n and_o reprehension_n say_v that_o he_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o also_o of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o s._n paul_n multa_fw-la prophetarum_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o pauli_n detorquet_fw-la and_o the_o word_n which_o they_o reprehend_v in_o s._n irenaeus_n be_v these_o prophetae_fw-la &_o
apostoli_fw-la hortabantur_fw-la homines_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la agere_fw-la bonum_fw-la quoque_fw-la operari_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la sit_fw-la hoc_fw-la the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v exhort_v man_n to_o do_v justice_n and_o to_o work_v good_a work_n for_o that_o this_o be_v in_o our_o power_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o great_a offence_n in_o s._n irenaeus_n to_o speak_v so_o like_o a_o papist_n 44._o they_o accuse_v also_o other_o father_n of_o the_o same_o age_n for_o like_a fault_n as_o justinus_n martyr_n if_o it_o be_v his_o book_n in_o his_o answer_n unto_o the_o hundred_o and_o three_o question_n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n lib._n 2._o stromatum_fw-la say_v of_o this_o latter_a clemens_n liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la ubique_fw-la asserit_fw-la clement_n do_v every_o where_o defend_v freewill_n and_o final_o they_o give_v this_o censure_n of_o all_o that_o age_n nullus_fw-la ferè_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la locus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la tam_fw-la citò_fw-la obscurari_fw-la coeperit_fw-la atque_fw-la hic_fw-la de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la there_o be_v no_o piece_n of_o doctrine_n that_o begin_v to_o be_v darken_v so_o soon_o as_o this_o of_o free_a will_n which_o darken_n be_v nothing_o else_o with_o they_o but_o the_o catholic_n sense_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o now_o also_o we_o hold_v to_o wit_n that_o albeit_o man_n his_o freewill_n be_v great_o work_n wound_v by_o adam_n fall_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o so_o extinguish_v but_o that_o nature_n be_v relieve_v by_o the_o holy_a assistance_n of_o christ_n grace_n and_o not_o otherwise_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n may_v cooperate_v in_o do_v of_o good_a work_n which_o be_v also_o these_o holy_a father_n meaning_n 45._o the_o like_o the_o say_v magdeburgian_o do_v complain_v of_o the_o article_n of_o good_a work_n and_o perfection_n of_o life_n to_o wit_n that_o this_o doctrine_n also_o begin_v to_o be_v darken_v in_o this_o age_n so_o as_o according_a unto_o they_o the_o candle_n lighten_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o set_v upon_o the_o golden_a candlestick_n of_o the_o church_n dure_v but_o a_o little_a while_n 46._o furthermore_o they_o cyte_v also_o that_o say_n of_o s._n clement_n lib._n 5._o stromatum_fw-la which_o anger_v they_o very_o much_o gratia_n seruamur_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la absque_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n but_o not_o without_o good_a work_n et_fw-fr lib._n 6._o stromatum_fw-la quando_fw-la audierimus_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la te_fw-la saluum_fw-la fecit_fw-la non_fw-la accepimus_fw-la eum_fw-la dicere_fw-la absolutè_fw-la choose_fw-la saluos_fw-la suturos_fw-la qui_fw-la quomodocunque_fw-la crediderint_fw-la nisi_fw-la facta_fw-la quoque_fw-la fuerint_fw-la consecuta_fw-la whensoever_o we_o shall_v hear_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n unto_o the_o cananaean_a thy_o faith_n have_v save_v thou_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o he_o say_v absolute_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v whosoever_o believe_v in_o any_o sort_n except_o good_a deed_n do_v also_o follow_v and_o be_v this_o aught_o else_o but_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n that_o faith_n must_v go_v before_o and_o good_a work_n follow_v and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o self_n same_o doctrine_n which_o s._n paul_n teach_v say_v that_o the_o save_a faith_n be_v fides_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la charitatem_fw-la operatur_fw-la the_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o charity_n in_o us._n 47._o moreover_o concern_v the_o law_n that_o it_o do_v not_o impossible_a command_v impossible_a thing_n but_o that_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o christ_n grace_n christian_n man_n may_v observe_v the_o commandment_n this_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v censure_n for_o erroneous_a doctrine_n also_o in_o the_o father_n of_o this_o second_o age_n namely_o in_o justinus_n martyr_n resp_n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la 103._o who_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o example_n of_o s._n paul_n himself_o &_o of_o zachary_n and_o elizabeth_n that_o be_v both_o of_o they_o just_a and_o s._n irenaeus_n teach_v the_o say_a doctrine_n lib._n 4._o c._n 30._o and_o clemens_n lib._n 2._o stromatum_fw-la be_v all_o father_n of_o this_o second_o age_n which_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v afterward_o by_o all_o the_o father_n of_o subsequent_a age_n and_o yet_o do_v the_o goodfellow_n magdeburgians_n condemn_v the_o same_o with_o great_a resolution_n out_o of_o a_o maxim_n of_o aristotle_n most_o foolish_o and_o wicked_o apply_v say_v dato_n uno_fw-la inconuenienti_fw-la sequi_fw-la solent_fw-la infinita_fw-la one_o inconvenience_n be_v grant_v by_o these_o father_n to_o wit_n the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n infinite_a other_o inconvenience_n be_v wont_a to_o follow_v which_o speech_n of_o the_o father_n though_o it_o be_v incommodious_a unto_o the_o magdeburgian_o &_o for_o such_o set_v down_o by_o they_o yet_o be_v the_o word_n plain_a for_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n now_o hold_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o that_o behalf_n 48._o but_o yet_o further_o concern_v the_o external_a usual_a sacrifice_n of_o christian_n then_o accustom_v to_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o christian_n altar_n the_o same_o magdeburgian_o be_v much_o trouble_v about_o certain_a speech_n of_o s._n ignatius_n and_o s._n irenaeus_n the_o first_o have_v these_o word_n in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la smyrnenses_n non_fw-fr lice_n sine_fw-la episcopo_fw-la neque_fw-la offer_n neque_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la immolare_fw-la it_o be_v not_o lawful_a without_o the_o bishop_n to_o make_v oblation_n or_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o the_o like_a word_n they_o cyte_v out_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n 4._o cap._n 32._o say_v of_o he_o satis_fw-la videtur_fw-la loqui_fw-la incommodè_fw-la cum_fw-la ait_fw-la novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la novam_fw-la docuit_fw-la oblationem_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n accijiens_fw-la in_o universo_fw-la mundo_fw-la offer_v deo_fw-la irenaeus_n say_v they_o seem_v to_o speak_v incommodious_o enough_o when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v teach_v a_o new_a oblation_n of_o a_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n do_v offer_v unto_o god_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o they_o of_o the_o external_a christian_a sacrifice_n of_o those_o day_n check_v &_o condemn_v the_o father_n of_o that_o first_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n 49._o about_o tradition_n in_o like_a manner_n rite_n and_o cerimonye_n they_o complain_v in_o this_o age_n as_o they_o do_v of_o other_o tradition_n point_n before_o to_o wit_n that_o doctrina_fw-la de_fw-la libertate_fw-la christiana_fw-la nonnihil_a coepit_fw-la obseurari_fw-la that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n begin_v not_o a_o little_a to_o be_v darken_v with_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o this_o age_n also_o &_o succrevit_fw-la say_v they_o paulatim_fw-la error_n de_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la necessariò_fw-la obseruandis_fw-la and_o the_o error_n of_o necessary_a observation_n of_o tradition_n do_v by_o little_a and_o little_o grow_v up_o whereof_o they_o give_v a_o example_n out_o of_o s._n ignatius_n his_o epistle_n add_v philadelphios_n where_o he_o say_v dies_fw-la festos_fw-la nolite_fw-la inhonor_n be_v quadragesimam_fw-la verò_fw-la nolite_fw-la pro_fw-la nihilo_fw-la habere_fw-la imitationem_fw-la enim_fw-la cominet_fw-la dei_fw-la conversationis_fw-la hebdomadam_fw-la etiam_fw-la passionis_fw-la nolite_fw-la despicere_fw-la quarta_fw-la verò_fw-la &_o sexta_fw-la feria_fw-la ieiunate_fw-la reliquias_fw-la pauperibus_fw-la porrigentes_fw-la do_v not_o dishonour_v holy_a day_n do_v not_o neglect_v lend_v for_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o imitation_n of_o christ_n his_o conversation_n who_o be_v our_o god_n do_v not_o despise_v the_o passion_n week_n do_v you_o fast_o upon_o wensdaye_n and_o fry_v day_n &_o that_o which_o be_v leave_v of_o your_o meat_n give_v it_o unto_o the_o poor_a and_o this_o be_v the_o darkness_n which_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v observe_v or_o rather_o this_o be_v the_o light_n which_o those_o angel_n of_o darkness_n and_o instrument_n of_o satan_n will_v darken_v in_o the_o apostolical_a write_n of_o s._n ignatius_n and_o other_o ancient_n of_o this_o very_o next_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n contrary_a unto_o their_o carnal_a and_o evangelicall_a liberty_n which_o their_o first_o luxurious_a apostata_fw-la and_o cloysterbreaker_n luther_n set_v abroach_o 50._o the_o same_o magdeburgian_o do_v cite_v a_o plain_a sentence_n out_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o whereby_o he_o prove_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o wit_n for_o her_o more_o powerable_a principality_n rome_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n that_o all_o church_n shall_v come_v unto_o she_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o faithful_a people_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o that_o in_o she_o have_v be_v conserve_v ever_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o plain_a sentence_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v endeavour_v to_o delude_v by_o diverse_a shift_n as_o first_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o savour_n of_o novelty_n then_o that_o this_o sentence_n be_v find_v say_v they_o in_o the_o copy_n that_o now_o be_v extant_a of_o irenaeus_n as_o though_o there_o be_v other_o not_o extant_a that_o have_v it_o not_o three_o
do_v conclude_v thus_o alibi_n verò_fw-la passim_fw-la cyprianus_n dicit_fw-la super_fw-la petrum_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la fundatam_fw-la esse_fw-la cyprian_n do_v ordinary_o in_o other_o place_n affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v sound_v upon_o peter_n as_o lib._n 1._o epist_n 3._o lib._n 4._o epist_n 9_o tract_n 2._o de_fw-la habitu_fw-la virginum_fw-la serm_fw-la 3._o de_fw-la bono_fw-mi patientiae_fw-la &_o epist_n ad_fw-la quirinum_fw-la 65._o and_o the_o same_o have_v origen_n say_v they_o tract_n 5._o in_o matth._n in_o these_o word_n petrus_n per_fw-la promissionem_fw-la meruit_fw-la fieri_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la et_fw-la homil_n 17._o super_fw-la lucam_fw-la petrum_fw-la vocat_fw-la apostolorun_n principem_fw-la peter_n by_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n deserve_v to_o be_v make_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o in_o his_o 17._o homily_n upon_o luke_n origen_n call_v s._n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n thus_o the_o magdeburgian_o be_v force_v to_o show_v the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n to_o be_v against_o themselves_o 66._o and_o now_o by_o this_o the_o prudent_a reader_n may_v judge_v what_o a_o volume_n i_o may_v make_v up_o if_o i_o shall_v here_o recyte_v all_o the_o authority_n which_o in_o this_o kind_n the_o magdeburgian_o 86._o do_v allege_v for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o general_a head_n touch_v in_o the_o forego_n age_n and_o the_o other_o here_o adjoin_v for_o thus_o they_o begin_v the_o article_n of_o martyrdom_n and_o merit_v thereof_o martyrium_fw-la immodicè_fw-la extulerunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la huius_fw-la aetatis_fw-la doctores_fw-la all_o the_o doctor_n and_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o mark_v that_o they_o say_v all_o of_o this_o age_n do_v extol_v martyrdom_n immoderate_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n they_o begin_v their_o article_n of_o chastity_n thus_o sicut_fw-la &_o in_fw-la superioris_fw-la saeculi_fw-la historia_fw-la it_o a_o &_o hic_fw-la inuenies_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la praedicari_fw-la &_o extolli_fw-la continentiam_fw-la as_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o former_a age_n so_o here_o shall_v you_o find_v continency_n to_o be_v over_o much_o commend_v and_o extol_v and_o thus_o much_o for_o these_o so_o many_o and_o so_o several_a point_n as_o before_o have_v be_v touch_v 67._o now_o let_v we_o add_v one_o article_n or_o head_n more_o of_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n discover_v by_o the_o same_o magdeburgian_o 85._o in_o the_o father_n of_o this_o three_o age_n not_o hitherto_o handle_v to_o wit_n the_o article_n of_o purgatory_n for_o thus_o they_o write_v semina_fw-la purgatoris_fw-la in_o aliquot_fw-la locis_fw-la apud_fw-la originem_fw-la subinde_fw-la sparsa_fw-la videas_fw-la you_o purgatory_n may_v see_v here_o and_o there_o the_o seed_n of_o purgatory_n sow_v in_o certain_a place_n of_o origin_n his_o work_n as_o homily_n the_o 2._o in_o psalm_n 36._o &_o homil_n 3._o in_o cumdem_n &_o homil_n 8._o in_o leviticum_fw-la &_o homil_n 12._o in_o ezechielem_n &_o in_o libro_fw-la primo_fw-la contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la &_o lib._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cap._n 6._o and_o albeit_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v call_v this_o but_o a_o strong_a imagination_n of_o origen_n yet_o i_o do_v consider_v this_o that_o among_o so_o many_o opinion_n reprehend_v and_o condemn_v in_o origen_n by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o subsequent_a age_n yet_o none_o do_v ever_o reprehend_v this_o his_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n as_o a_o error_n of_o he_o but_o rather_o follow_v origen_n themselves_o hold_v the_o same_o as_o a_o catholic_a truth_n so_o as_o now_o the_o other_o head_n of_o roman_a catholic_a doctrine_n hold_v by_o the_o chief_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o two_o precedent_a age_n to_o wit_n about_o freewill_n perfection_n of_o life_n possibility_n of_o the_o commandment_n tradition_n and_o rite_n supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n merit_n of_o martyrdom_n state_n of_o virginity_n and_o the_o like_a here_o in_o this_o age_n the_o same_o head_n be_v not_o only_o confirm_v and_o ratify_v but_o as_o many_o more_o disclose_v as_o prayer_n unto_o angel_n justification_n by_o work_n penance_n and_o satisfaction_n intercession_n of_o martyr_n for_o sinner_n in_o this_o life_n sanctify_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n by_o the_o priest_n necessity_n and_o efficacy_n of_o holy_a chrism_n sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n upon_o altar_n the_o form_n of_o invocation_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n purgatory_n and_o diverse_a other_o such_o like_a point_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n controverse_v i_o here_o for_o brevity_n sake_n do_v pass_v over_o hasten_v unto_o the_o four_o age_n the_o four_o age._n 68_o the_o four_o age_n of_o christ_n beginning_n from_o the_o year_n 400._o have_v for_o chief_a father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n s_o cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n s._n ephraim_n s._n basil_n s._n epiphanius_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n gregory_n nissen_n and_o many_o other_o as_o also_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v s._n ambrose_n s._n hierome_n prudentius_n philastrius_n ruffinus_n and_o other_o in_o which_o age_n two_o principal_a point_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v here_o for_o our_o purpose_n first_o whether_o all_o the_o former_a catholic_a opinion_n that_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o precedent_n age_n to_o be_v then_o hold_v by_o the_o church_n and_o father_n thereof_o be_v now_o confirm_v also_o in_o this_o four_o age_n and_o second_o whether_o any_o other_o point_n be_v further_o insinuate_v and_o inculcate_v touch_v the_o same_o doctrine_n 69._o and_o as_o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o low_a we_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o great_a confirmation_n and_o illustration_n upon_o occasion_n of_o heretical_a opposition_n shall_v we_o find_v of_o the_o same_o article_n as_o for_o example_n the_o magdeburgian_o have_v a_o chapter_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la 242._o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherein_o they_o do_v prove_v out_o of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n eusebius_n ambrose_n hieronymus_n hilarius_n arnobius_n basilius_n epiphanius_n and_o diverse_a other_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o this_o age_n the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o say_a supper_n which_o they_o hold_v to_o have_v be_v true_o and_o catholicke_o defend_v by_o they_o then_o pass_v over_o unto_o the_o other_o head_n which_o lie_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o they_o do_v show_v to_o be_v hold_v also_o but_o as_o they_o say_v erroneous_o by_o the_o chief_a father_n of_o this_o four_o age_n no_o less_o then_o by_o those_o of_o the_o former_a age_n and_o then_o begin_v with_o the_o article_n of_o free_a will_n they_o say_v patres_fw-la omnes_fw-la huius_fw-la ferè_fw-la aetatis_fw-la de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la confusè_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la all_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v speak_v in_o a_o sort_n confuse_o of_o free_a will_n but_o howsoever_o the_o father_n speak_v confuse_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o magdeburgian_o speak_v and_o censure_v false_o and_o heretical_o according_a to_o their_o old_a wont_a 70._o and_o yet_o present_o after_o they_o make_v mention_n of_o lactantius_n athanasius_n basilius_n nazianzen_n epiphanius_n s._n hierome_n and_o s._n gregory_n man_n who_o speak_v as_o plain_o and_o distinct_o thereof_o as_o man_n may_v do_v and_o as_o it_o may_v possible_o be_v imagine_v demetriadem_n and_o not_o confuse_o let_v we_o hear_v s._n hierome_n speak_v in_o steed_n of_o all_o omni_fw-la aetati_fw-la say_v he_o omnique_fw-la personae_fw-la libertas_fw-la arbitrij_fw-la relicta_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la cogo_fw-la non_fw-la impero_fw-la sed_fw-la propono_fw-la palmam_fw-la ostendo_fw-la praemia_fw-la tuum_fw-la est_fw-la eligere_fw-la si_fw-la volueris_fw-la in_o ago_o &_o certamine_fw-la coronari_fw-la liberty_n of_o freewill_n be_v leave_v unto_o every_o age_n and_o unto_o all_o person_n god_n say_v i_o do_v not_o force_v i_o do_v not_o command_v but_o i_o do_v propose_v unto_o thou_o the_o crown_n and_o do_v show_v thou_o the_o reward_n it_o be_v thy_o part_n to_o choose_v if_o thou_o will_v win_v the_o crown_n in_o the_o fight_n and_o conflict_n so_o he_o 71._o and_o the_o very_a same_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v often_o time_n by_o he_o reassume_v reiterated_a and_o urge_v in_o incite_v man_n to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o evangelicall_a counsel_n where_o he_o use_v the_o self_n same_o word_n in_o many_o place_n of_o of_o his_o work_n the_o say_v magdeburgians_n do_v allege_v most_o plain_a and_o clear_a place_n and_o sentence_n forth_o of_o lactantius_n nilus_n chromatius_n ephraim_n and_o s._n hierome_n who_o teach_v plain_o that_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o only_a faith_n non_fw-la sufficit_fw-la murum_fw-la habere_fw-la fidei_fw-la nisi_fw-la ipsa_fw-la fides_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la confirmetur_fw-la it_o be_v not_o say_v isaiam_n s._n hierome_n sufficient_a to_o have_v the_o wall_n of_o faith_n except_o that_o faith_n be_v confirm_v with_o good_a work_n 72._o and_o as_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v open_o confess_v that_o both_o the_o
tamen_fw-la liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la spiritualib_a we_o etiam_fw-la statuunt_fw-la albeit_o the_o father_n sometime_o speak_v well_o and_o sound_o yet_o at_o length_n they_o affirm_v that_o man_n have_v freewill_n even_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o then_o they_o begin_v with_o s._n chrysostome_n allege_v many_o plain_a place_n out_o of_o his_o work_n at_o large_a say_v chrysostomus_n passim_fw-la liberi_fw-la arbitrij_fw-la patronum_fw-la agit_fw-fr s._n chrysostome_n do_v every_o where_o play_v the_o advocate_n for_o freewill_n from_o s._n chrysostome_n they_o pass_v unto_o s._n augustine_n and_o from_o s._n augustine_n to_o s._n cyril_n and_o from_o they_o to_o theodoret_n hesichius_n thalassius_n faustus_n marcus_n eremita_n and_o joannes_n cassianus_n all_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o this_o five_o age_n and_o the_o same_o they_o do_v in_o the_o six_o age_n allege_v many_o place_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n the_o first_o as_o also_o out_o of_o euodius_n olympiodorus_n and_o other_o 81._o then_o pass_v they_o unto_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n show_v that_o the_o father_n of_o these_o age_n do_v not_o ascribe_v justification_n unto_o only_a faith_n but_o require_v also_o work_n for_o which_o they_o allege_v large_a sentence_n out_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n s._n cyril_n s._n augustine_n though_o more_o contract_o and_o out_o of_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a who_o offend_v they_o much_o by_o say_v recta_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la pervenitur_fw-la ad_fw-la regnum_fw-la dei_fw-la by_o right_a faith_n and_o good_a work_n we_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o from_o he_o they_o pass_v to_o s._n prosper_n hesichius_n sedulius_n primasius_n theodulus_n all_o of_o the_o forename_a father_n hold_v the_o same_o erroneous_a opinion_n as_o it_o please_v their_o masterships_n to_z call_v it_o for_o that_o work_n be_v by_o they_o ever_o join_v with_o faith_n and_o that_o in_o the_o last_o judgement_n christ_n shall_v question_v with_o they_o not_o so_o much_o what_o they_o have_v believe_v as_o what_o they_o have_v practise_v 82._o and_o the_o same_o do_v they_o in_o the_o next_o hundred_o year_n after_o allege_v for_o it_o the_o write_n of_o cassiodorus_n olympiodorus_n andraeas_n hierosolymitanus_n and_o above_o all_o and_o more_o large_o they_o allege_v above_o a_o dozen_o place_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o say_v vita_fw-la aeterna_fw-la ex_fw-la piae_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la actionibus_fw-la comparatur_fw-la life_n everlasting_a in_o the_o next_o world_n 1._o be_v prepare_v and_o get_v by_o pious_a action_n in_o this_o life_n 83._o from_o this_o article_n they_o skip_v unto_o another_o of_o the_o 506._o excellency_n and_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n which_o article_n they_o begin_v thus_o nimiùm_fw-la haec_fw-la aetas_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la adscripsit_fw-la this_o five_o age_n do_v ascribe_v to_o much_o unto_o the_o good_a work_n of_o man_n which_o they_o declare_v large_o first_o out_o of_o chrysostome_n his_o write_n say_v that_o he_o be_v immodicus_fw-la encomiastes_n bonorum_fw-la operum_fw-la a_o immoderate_a commender_n of_o good_a work_n and_o from_o he_o they_o pass_v unto_o s._n augustine_n shake_v he_o also_o by_o the_o sleeve_n and_o take_v he_o up_o for_o halt_v and_o say_v augustinus_n etiam_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la interdum_fw-la operibus_fw-la tribuit_fw-la augustine_n also_o attribute_v some_o tim_n too_o much_o to_o good_a work_n then_o they_o pass_v unto_o pope_n leo_fw-la and_o show_v the_o same_o excess_n out_o of_o he_o and_o from_o these_o they_o come_v unto_o s._n prosper_n to_o saluianus_n to_o maximus_n to_o salonius_n to_o thalassius_n to_o theodulus_n to_o eucherius_n to_o paulinus_n and_o some_o other_o all_o doctor_n and_o father_n of_o this_o five_o age_n 84._o and_o then_o in_o the_o six_o age_n follow_v the_o same_o methood_n under_o their_o article_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la they_o reprehend_v for_o ascribe_v to_o much_o thereunto_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a euodius_n cassiodorus_n olympiodorus_n fortunatus_n and_o justus_n father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o doctor_n of_o those_o day_n 85._o there_o follow_v the_o article_n of_o penance_n wherewith_o they_o begin_v thus_o consessioni_fw-la ieiuniijs_fw-la &_o alijs_fw-la ritibus_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la vendicat_fw-la chrysostomus_n chrysostome_n do_v ascribe_v to_o much_o unto_o confession_n fast_v and_o other_o rite_n of_o penance_n and_o of_o the_o same_o error_n do_v they_o condemn_v hesichius_n for_o that_o lib._n 2._o in_o cap._n 6._o levit._n he_o say_v that_o true_a penance_n do_v consist_v in_o fast_v watch_v haireclothe_n tear_n prayer_n and_o almsdeed_n the_o same_o error_n they_o ascribe_v to_o maximus_n joannes_n cassianus_n eucherius_n doctor_n of_o this_o five_o age_n and_o in_o the_o six_o century_n they_o lay_v the_o same_o imputation_n upon_o cassiodorus_n and_o s._n gregory_n especial_o chide_v he_o for_o that_o he_o say_v poenitentiam_fw-la agere_fw-la est_fw-la perpetrata_fw-la mala_fw-la plangere_fw-la &_o plangerda_fw-la non_fw-la perpetrare_fw-la this_o be_v to_o do_v penance_n to_o moan_v and_o bewail_v our_o sin_n we_o have_v commit_v and_o not_o to_o commit_v again_o thing_n euang._n worthy_a of_o bewail_v what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o divine_o by_o this_o heavenly_a doctor_n and_o will_v a_o man_n judge_v these_o man_n to_o be_v christian_n dare_v thus_o to_o open_v their_o mouth_n and_o public_o to_o blaspheme_v 86._o i_o may_v pass_v further_a to_o allege_v much_o more_o out_o of_o these_o magdeburgian_n centuriator_n which_o they_o produce_v out_o of_o every_o age_n most_o manifest_o against_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o cause_n with_o this_o only_a fond_a confidence_n that_o all_o authority_n and_o credit_n of_o the_o venerable_a testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v shift_v of_o by_o say_v only_o that_o they_o be_v incommodious_a opinion_n blot_n stubble_n and_o error_n of_o the_o father_n as_o though_o the_o very_a glean_n magdeburgians_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o better_o than_o their_o whole_a vintage_n and_o these_o blot_n and_o stubble_n and_o false_o suppose_a error_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o their_o best_a truth_n but_o who_o tell_v these_o good_a fellow_n that_o these_o be_v error_n what_o church_n ever_o hold_v they_o so_o what_o general_n council_n ever_o conclude_v they_o so_o nay_o what_o one_o father_n or_o one_o ancient_a writer_n the_o grand_a heretic_n their_o ancient_a predecessor_n except_v do_v once_o open_a his_o mouth_n to_o speak_v against_o either_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o these_o doctrine_n if_o they_o can_v disprove_v any_o one_o of_o these_o doctrine_n according_a to_o any_o one_o of_o the_o forename_a challenge_n church_n counsel_n one_o father_n or_o many_o we_o do_v faithful_o promise_v to_o renounce_v they_o all_o as_o stubble_n and_o error_n as_o they_o speak_v but_o if_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v make_v good_a against_o any_o one_o the_o least_o and_o weak_a suppose_a doctrine_n then_o must_v these_o doctrine_n as_o hitherto_o they_o have_v stand_v in_o the_o church_n for_o orthodox_n so_o must_v they_o hereafter_o continue_v catholic_a and_o they_o themselves_o for_o confess_v the_o father_n to_o hold_v they_o and_o we_o withal_o urge_v antiquity_n that_o do_v deny_v consent_n of_o father_n in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o great_a and_o rash_a presumption_n 87._o and_o yet_o for_o full_a conclusion_n i_o must_v advertise_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v this_o one_o point_n which_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v very_o remarkable_a for_o these_o magdeburgian_o do_v conclusion_n scarce_o allege_v one_o place_n of_o ten_o of_o these_o that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o father_n work_n themselves_o for_o proof_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a religion_n as_o every_o man_n may_v easy_o discern_v if_o he_o please_v to_o read_v the_o catholic_a writer_n that_o make_v profession_n purposely_o to_o allege_v the_o place_n of_o ancient_a father_n as_o namely_o canisius_n in_o his_o large_a catechism_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n throughout_o all_o his_o work_n cardinal_n baronius_n coccius_n in_o his_o thesaurus_fw-la catholicus_n and_o other_o but_o yet_o these_o that_o the_o magdeburgian_o please_v to_o cite_v be_v sufficient_a to_o daunt_v the_o english_a protestant_n his_o confidence_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n since_o that_o they_o alone_o of_o themselves_o confute_v and_o confound_v both_o he_o and_o his_o religion_n with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v the_o english_a protestant_n vaunt_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v for_o he_o and_o further_o these_o few_o place_n of_o many_o that_o may_v be_v heap_v together_o may_v as_o i_o hope_v suffice_v to_o give_v his_o excellent_a majesty_n our_o sovereign_n satisfaction_n or_o at_o leastwise_o sufficient_a light_n by_o these_o to_o pass_v further_o and_o to_o seek_v more_o sound_a information_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n
by_o raze_v out_o these_o evil_a humour_n from_o the_o body_n 8._o and_o now_o your_o majesty_n have_v see_v by_o the_o former_a discourse_n how_o many_o point_n of_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n have_v be_v reviue_v and_o renew_v again_o by_o the_o protestant_n of_o our_o time_n and_o that_o contrariwise_o almost_o twenty_o several_a position_n about_o principal_a point_n of_o controversy_n hold_v by_o the_o say_a protestant_n to_o be_v papistical_a be_v assert_v by_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n as_o catholic_a in_o their_o day_n even_o from_o the_o first_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n with_o repetition_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o in_o the_o subsequent_a age_n by_o the_o chief_a doctor_n that_o live_v therein_o and_o that_o the_o say_v position_n or_o assertion_n be_v never_o note_v or_o censure_v by_o the_o england_n church_n for_o erroneous_a heretical_a or_o scandalous_a this_o i_o say_v be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v your_o majesty_n prudence_n and_o love_n of_o your_o everlasting_a good_a so_o weighty_a a_o argument_n and_o motive_n as_o nothing_o more_o for_o alas_o dread_a sovereign_n if_o the_o sentence_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v just_a and_o true_a that_o a_o heretical_a man_n be_v damn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o if_o that_o of_o s._n augustine_n before_o cite_v be_v not_o false_a that_o whosoever_o hould_v any_o one_o of_o those_o eighty_o three_o heresy_n which_o he_o recite_v in_o his_o book_n to_o quod-vult-deus_a or_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o which_o shall_v spring_v up_o hereafter_o can_v be_v a_o christian_n catholic_n &_o consequent_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o heretic_n alas_o i_o say_v my_o dread_a sovereign_n and_o alas_o again_o in_o what_o eternal_a danger_n do_v your_o princely_a soul_n consist_v in_o that_o by_o the_o evil_a current_n of_o the_o time_n and_o temerarious_a course_n of_o such_o as_o you_o give_v credit_n unto_o your_o majesty_n be_v draw_v to_o hold_v and_o defend_v not_o only_o sundry_a of_o those_o position_n which_o s._n augustine_n and_o before_o he_o s._n epiphamus_n do_v recount_v for_o condemn_a heresy_n by_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n but_o many_o other_o also_o yea_o all_o the_o opposite_a proposition_n to_o the_o catholic_n assertion_n before_o mention_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o namely_o about_o freewill_n justification_n good_a work_n invocation_n of_o saint_n real_a presence_n primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o like_a 9_o and_o true_o to_o have_v such_o a_o grand_a inquest_n or_o rather_o parliament_n of_o peer_n to_o bear_v witness_n against_o a_o soul_n for_o convincement_n of_o heresy_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n as_o the_o rank_n of_o these_o father_n be_v in_o all_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o christian_a religion_n make_v my_o soul_n to_o tremble_v even_o in_o think_v of_o it_o for_o if_o the_o cause_n be_v temporal_a &_o that_o there_o go_v therein_o but_o only_o the_o interest_n of_o your_o majesty_n temporal_a and_o terrene_a kingdom_n yet_o be_v the_o case_n frightful_a to_o see_v so_o many_o great_a lawyer_n and_o judge_n upon_o the_o one_o side_n so_o resolute_a as_o the_o father_n show_v themselves_o to_o be_v but_o now_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o matter_n concern_v a_o everlasting_a and_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o sentence_n irrevocable_a in_o itself_o never_o alterable_a or_o to_o be_v change_v and_o of_o such_o inflexible_a severity_n as_o no_o respect_n no_o regard_n no_o difference_n of_o prince_n potentate_n or_o people_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v it_o make_v the_o consideration_n more_o hideous_a and_o dreadful_a 10._o and_o it_o may_v further_o be_v add_v to_o this_o consideration_n that_o in_o this_o public_a trial_n about_o this_o point_n of_o protestant_a religion_n your_o majesty_n be_v not_o only_o to_o have_v this_o venerable_a rank_n of_o foreign_a father_n &_o doctor_n for_o adversary_n therein_o but_o so_o many_o domestical_a also_o as_o have_v be_v catholic_n within_o all_o your_o realm_n for_o these_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o i_o mean_v bishop_n pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o those_o flock_n together_o with_o the_o flock_n that_o be_v once_o subject_n of_o your_o ancestor_n nay_o all_o your_o majesty_n ancestor_n themselves_o which_o be_v of_o most_o consideration_n i_o mean_v above_o two_o hundred_o king_n of_o both_o crown_n that_o have_v go_v before_o you_o and_o together_o with_o the_o descent_n of_o their_o noble_a blood_n leave_v also_o in_o their_o inheritance_n of_o catholic_a religion_n as_o of_o their_o kingdom_n to_o be_v defend_v by_o your_o majesty_n which_o no_o doubt_n have_v be_v most_o noble_o perform_v if_o the_o majesty_n strange_a case_n that_o ever_o perhaps_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o world_n have_v not_o happen_v to_o hinder_v it_o and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o all_o posterity_n may_v and_o will_v wonder_v at_o and_o this_o be_v that_o be_v violent_o deprive_v at_o once_o as_o it_o be_v in_o your_o cradle_n of_o both_o your_o parent_n who_o shall_v and_o will_v have_v instill_v to_o your_o tender_a ear_n the_o most_o honourable_a inheritance_n of_o catholic_n religion_n the_o opposite_a and_o contrary_a fect_n be_v in_o place_n thereof_o pour_v into_o your_o majesty_n noble_a breast_n by_o such_o as_o have_v be_v author_n or_o instrument_n of_o both_o their_o ruin_n and_o mean_v no_o doubt_n also_o to_o be_v of_o your_o majesty_n if_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v you_o pliable_a to_o their_o design_n for_o overturning_a of_o that_o religion_n whereof_o they_o be_v enemy_n 11._o this_o then_o be_v the_o case_n most_o dread_a sovereign_n notorious_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o further_o that_o if_o your_o majesties_n noble_a grandmother_n regent_n of_o scotland_n have_v not_o be_v vex_v and_o turmoil_v with_o rebellion_n toss_v and_o tumble_v weary_a out_o and_o bring_v to_o despair_v by_o the_o first_o scottish_n and_o english_a ghospeller_n if_o your_o noble_a father_n and_o grandfather_n have_v not_o be_v horrible_o murder_v if_o your_o renown_a mother_n have_v not_o be_v pursue_v take_v cast_v into_o prison_n drive_v out_o of_o her_o realm_n and_o final_o make_v violent_o away_o in_o terra_fw-la aliena_fw-la if_o all_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v have_v not_o be_v do_v your_o majesty_n by_o all_o likelihood_n have_v never_o be_v a_o protestant_n and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o of_o such_o diabolical_a premise_n there_o can_v ensue_v any_o good_a conclusion_n or_o any_o godly_a or_o wholesome_a effect_n of_o so_o abominable_a cause_n 12._o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o inscrutable_a wisdom_n and_o providence_n of_o almighty_a god_n do_v often_o time_n draw_v out_o intention_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o action_n of_o evil_a man_n good_a effect_n as_o out_o of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n that_o pursue_v and_o murder_v our_o saviour_n he_o wrought_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o never_o do_v he_o this_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v to_o say_v these_o effect_n be_v never_o intend_v by_o the_o wicked_a as_o for_o example_n that_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n or_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v never_o intend_v by_o the_o jew_n or_o gentile_n that_o persecute_v our_o saviour_n and_o procure_v his_o bless_a passion_n 13._o but_o here_o in_o our_o case_n the_o matter_n fall_v out_o quite_o contrary_a for_o that_o the_o chief_a and_o prime_a intention_n of_o those_o wicked_a who_o i_o have_v mention_v be_v to_o effectuate_v this_o very_a point_n that_o now_o we_o see_v bring_v to_o pass_v to_o revolve_v that_o crown_n expel_v catholic_a religion_n pull_v down_o monastery_n and_o church_n drive_v out_o or_o destroy_v the_o majesty_n prince_n that_o then_o govern_v as_o also_o their_o issue_n if_o they_o shall_v leave_v any_o or_o else_o get_v the_o same_o into_o their_o hand_n the_o better_a thereby_o to_o have_v title_n of_o govern_v in_o the_o infant_n name_n to_o preserve_v it_o so_o long_o as_o it_o may_v stand_v commodious_a for_o they_o &_o after_o to_o dispose_v thereof_o as_o time_n shall_v tell_v they_o to_o be_v best_a but_o their_o chief_a aim_n of_o all_o be_v unto_o that_o which_o out_o of_o a_o infant_n education_n they_o may_v probable_o hope_v for_o and_o now_o have_v arrive_v unto_o which_o be_v that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o that_o education_n they_o may_v perhaps_o so_o inchant_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o young_a prince_n so_o change_v his_o judgement_n and_o affection_n from_o the_o judgement_n and_o affection_n of_o his_o say_a parent_n and_o other_o progenitor_n as_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o understanding_n to_o discern_v the_o merit_n of_o man_n action_n and_o affection_n towards_o he_o he_o shall_v approve_v for_o good_a all_o that_o be_v do_v to_o his_o high_a hurt_n to_o wit_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n